The Man Of Sin : The Series ( 0 )


Anal, Bdsm, Blowjob, Cum-Swallowing, Extreme, First-Time, Gothic, Group-Sex, Hardcore, Humiliation, Lesbian, Oral-Sex, School, Threesome, Toys, Virginity
Chapter 1 :



German capital, Germany :

The young man climbed up out of the bed, leaving the bare fair sex to silently cry. He looked out the window at the showery city, chuckling to himself in both satisfaction and anticipation.

"What in God's name are you ?"the charwoman hissed as she curled up in the foetal position.

She was beautiful in body but broken in spirit, her inner thighs red from the blood of her shoot hymen. Her virginity had been taken from her to the ssephound of her squirm cries of pain and luxuria, caught in both sexual mortification and fulfillment. The vernal man's smirk gained a bloodthirsty Robert Curl and he flicked his digit as if to say that there was something he needed to exhibit her. The woman was dragged out of the bed as if an inconspicuous handwriting had grabbed her by the pharynx. She hit the wall beside the man and crumpled to the floor, gasping for air with a wale worn into her neck from an unseen effect. He grabbed her chin as if to steal a kiss, forcing her to look up at him.

She had spoken to him in German, so he answered in sort. His voice was cryptical and commanding, undeserving of someone so youthful, yet the mogul he wielded and the twisted astuteness of his individual were unlike any former man.

"In God's name you ask ? In this room, I am God. To you, I am God. As of now, you are a broken toy. I'm leaving tomorrow, and while you'll never see me again, you'll never be destitute of me. You will spend the rest of your life with a mettle filled with both concern and love, terrified of my touch but also longing for it. What man could ever want this impure body of yours after the things I have done to it ? What man could ever light in love with your soul after I've bent grass it to my will ? Once I'm gone, you'll think you are free, but the cage I've put you in will never disappear. Until the day you die, you are my property. But now it's time for me to find out something new to play with. I've become bored with you and this metropolis and it's clock time for me to travel on once again. I need some new feeding grounds."



Rome, Italy :

The Christian Bible bag hit the juvenile delinquent's head like a flail, knocking him to the ground while his Friend watched in jolt. Standing over him was a seventeen-year-old lady friend, her face flushed with madness in a red as bright as her haircloth, the skirt of her school uniform gently swaying in the breeze, and the crucifix hanging around her cervix gleaming in the dawning sunlight.

"Wretched punks ! You do not merit the mercifulness of God !"she shouted, pointing to the graffiti being spray-painted onto the bowling alley wall.

The boy got to his feet with roue pouring from his nozzle."You damn holler !"

He charged towards her with his fist rocketing towards her face, but she caught his arm and twisted it, forcing him to crouch back and letting her rap him in the Adam's Apple. As he fell back to the land, one of his friend lunged with a tongue in his hand. Forsaking her pridefulness and hoping nobody would see under her skirt, she spun around and delivered a bitch to his synagogue, knocking him out into the street like he was a soccer ball. The go delinquent stood, shaking like a leafage and holding out two seat of spray paint like they were macer.

The daughter shot him a dirty look."If you even think of getting a single drop of paint on my uniform, I swear in the epithet of Heaven that not even God will be able to bump your remains."His small flicker of braveness extinguished like a candle, he turned around and ran away."Oh no you don't !"

Tossing her rule book bag aside, she sprinted after him. Down the winding streets of Rome, she chased him while trying to snub the construction pain in her mortise joint from the uneven cobblestone ground. It didn't help that her schoolhouse shoes weren't meant for running. Regardless of this, she zeroed in on him like a missile, following him around every turn and across every open street. She saw him veer into an back street and skidded past it, grabbing a piece of a brick jutting out of the ground. Getting back to her exploit, she took careful aim and hurled the public square Harlan Stone at the fleeing vandal, striking him in the back of the head and sending him tumbling.

"Just goes to record that you can't escape your sins. You'd better pray for your immortal mortal when you wake up…"

contracting her breathing space, she looked at her sentinel and swore. She had gone out to get breakfast off campus but she had wasted what little clip she had and her for the first time class would be starting in a few minutes.



"Helena, have you been fighting again ?"

The Melanerpes erythrocephalus looked up at her blonde roommate, Sophie, standing by her desk. The classroom was filled with scholar all the same age, male and female. The girls were all dressed in plaid annulus with white blouses and knee joint drogue, the male child wearing black pants and whiten clergy shirts with pupil clerical collars. Everyone carried a cross with them, either around their neck or on rosary chains. Helena had just managed to get back to school before class started and now all the students were waiting for the teacher to arrive.

"How can you tell ?"

"Because you're wearing that plain face of self-righteousness."

"I was just putting some sinner in their place."

"Epistle to the Ephesians 4:32, you must remember to forgive."

"And I did forgive them, after I gave them a penchant of the bedevilment that awaits them in Hell if they do not give themselves up to Jesus christ and repudiate their sinful ways,"she hit back.

"fountainhead I certainly hope you'll remember to go to Confessions when you get the chance."

"Don't headache, Sophie. I will. Or at least the Disciplinary Committee will force me to before I can on my own."

The door opened and a nun stepped in, sending all of the students scurrying to their desks in concern. Their instructor, babe Olivia, was strict beyond touchstone. She was nicknamed the Sphinx, as in the Sphinx that the enslaved Hebrew made while being whipped and yelled at. She had short blond haircloth and drinking glass, a cleaning woman in her late twenties who would be very beautiful if she wasn't always scowling.

"Now class, we will go forward where we left off yesterday in translating Leviticus. Marcus, we had stopped at Book 6, verse 1. You may begin."

She spoke sternly, as if hungry for something to be mad about. One of the male students nervously stood up, holding his Word and reading off the rhyme in Latin. If he got a individual word damage, she would assail him like locusts. One by one, the students took turns reading off poetry from the bible, translating them from English to Latin. Whenever individual made a error, they would be ordered to form the death march to Sister Olivia's desk, outstretch their hands, and let her slap her trusty metre joystick against their brass knucks, each audible solidus of the wood making everyone shudder.

Against her better judgment, Helena allowed her eyes to betray and look out the window at the sunny campus of Rosewood University. The school had originally been developed to avail make out with Italy's high orphan rate while spreading the Christian religious belief, starting out as a Christian academy for children. Eventually, other country began shipping in their orphans after seeing the enceinte results, and then families started sending in their nestling. It was now the big and one of the most prestigious Catholic schools in the existence, boasting a student body ranging from preschoolers to college students and with armies of new non-Christian priest and conical buoy being marched out every year, cook to unfold the word of Good Shepherd Christ. Joining the clergy wasn't any variety of requisite for the school, but after 12 years, it became engrained in the souls of nigh of the students.

"O'Connor !"

Helena's nous perked up at the phone of her final stage name being called and her face became red in overplus. It was her turning to translate but she had been too meddlesome daydreaming to pay tending to the class. She had no idea which verse she had to translate, and if she asked… baby Olivia would practically crucify her.

"Helena O'Connor, make out to the Disciplinary Committee's place immediately."

The annunciation from the PA arrangement let her let go of a sigh of relief. penalty had saved her from penalty. All the students shrugged, well used to hearing this commandment.

"Sorry, babe Olivia, but I must impart,"she said sheepishly.

The instructor scowled at her, knowing that capital of Montana hadn't been paying attending."Go, but I still expect you to translate when you get back."

"Yes, ma'am !"

Taking her Koran bag with her, Helena stepped out of the classroom and began walking as fast as she could knock down the hall. Running was against the normal, but with how large the schooltime was, she needed to put in some fastness and reach the committee before they sent out another announcement. Stepping out into the open campus, she allowed herself a instant to enjoy the sunlight, breeze, and smell of grass, and then took off in a run. She passed by many other students in her speedy dash, both male and female. Normally Catholic schools like these had gender segregation, but with how many students were joining the clergy, rosewood academy used the coed population as a way to avail the scholarly person prepare for their vows of sexual abstention. By having all these teen learning side-by-side in this holy shoal, it was simply a matter of teaching them to ignore temptation. dating was strictly nix, and if they could fine-tune without ever giving in to their extraordinary desires, they would be ready for the clergy.

She at last reached the building with the Discipline Committee, and after climbing two flights of stairs, arrived at the entrance to their position. As she approached the doorway, she took a moment of catch her breath and straighten her haircloth. She stepped through an open doorway into a wait room, with an supporter behind a desk, a corridor lined with door, and several chairs and a couch in the corner of the room. Sitting in one of the chairwoman was a Lester Willis Young man, though from the very brief glimpse she gave him, she couldn't quite severalise his age. He looked to be as old as she was, but he could hold erstwhile, since unlike the other manly pupil in this school, he was dressed in the black clerical crownwork of an ordained minister. Though he lacked the prescribed collar.

She strode past times him to the assistant's desk.

"Hello, Helena. Same as usual ?"the woman asked with a wry grin.

This was FAR from capital of Montana's first meeting with the Disciplinary citizens committee. She sighed with a weary smile.

"Hello, The Virgin. I guess they're waiting for me ?"

"Go right in."

Helena nodded and walked down the corridor, reaching the second gear threshold. She entered a conference elbow room, where five teachers sat behind a long table, glaring at her with judgmental centre. Two of them were priest and another two were nuns.

"Ms. O'Connor, I'm for certain you know why we called you here,"the oldest teacher grumbled.

"I have an idea."

A female person instructor cleared her pharynx."Three Danton True Young men are being treated at the hospital, one coughing up blood with a broken nose and the early two suffering from concussions. When speaking to the police, they described you in clear detail. What do you ingest to say for yourself ?"

Helena straightened her posture and her eyes became steely."I was doing God's work, helping to cure this city of its sin. Why should I have gone easily on them when they will confront far worse in Hell ?"

One of the non-Christian priest slammed his hand on the table."That is not your decision to get to ! That is the job of the police, not a educatee of this school. Every time you act up like this, you give us a bad name. We can not condone your legal action, violence can never be tolerated from someone who claims to fight in the name of Jesus christ !"

"I will regret for what I did and ask God for forgiveness,"she said defiantly, as if to tell them that she did not recognize their authority.

"You'll do More than that. On top of fifteen Apostle's creed and ten Hail Marys, you are going to go and rationalize to those son before the end of the day, understood ?"

He handed her a sheet of newspaper publisher with their addresses and Helena bit her lingua, working to sustain her mood in check.

"Yes, Father Brian."

"Good, and to lighten your soul with a good act, we have something else for you to do…"The old priest pressed down on the button of a nearby intercom."Mary, please mail him in."

The student Helena had seen before stepped into the room, letting her at last get a unspoilt aspect at him. He was quite magniloquent and very better-looking, with a square jaw, blue eyes, and brown fuzz cut very short but still kind of spiky. She actually felt her heart flutter at the pot of him but shook the sensation away with a retightening of her moral corset.

"This is Xavier Michaels, he just transferred in. Show him around and help him get settled. The two of you will be sharing various classes together. Xavier, this is Helena O'Connor. If you need anything, ask her."

‘ Great, just what I needed. Now sis Olivia is going to beat me like a mule because I have to miss family and render this guy the ropes. No, no, it's not his fault. I shouldn't be mad at him.'

Forcing herself to wear a grinning, she held out her hand to shake his."Nice to meet you."

He took her hand and looked at her with sure-footed eyes. For a mo, she thought he was going to lean down and kiss her script."The delight is mine."

capital of Montana suddenly felt her grimace go red, but she had no estimation why."Ok, follow me and I'll give you a tour."

About to maltreat into the hall, she was stopped by one of the teachers calling her epithet."Helena, remember : every time you cause problem, you make it firmly for yourself to achieve your destination. You're facing a monolithic task already. Don't ruination things for yourself."

She nodded and departed with Xavier trailing after her. Leaving the waiting way, they started down the hall.

"I've never met a Catholic school day daughter who could fight."

"Huh ?"

"My apologies, but I could hear the conversation you and the teachers were having. You sent three people to the hospital and called it"God's work ”, meaning that you were engaged in a contentious state of affairs with them. Considering that I don't see any scratches on you or even a print on your uniform, you're clearly skilled enough to not get touched. Impressive."

multitude normally condemned her for fighting, but there was no judgment in his voice. She tried not to blush at the congratulations, never expecting him to just reveal her true self with such intuition."As the teachers will tell you, it is not one of my dear feature article. I've been training myself since I was a shaver in warlike arts and other combat way. They come in handy when I find an unapologetic sinner."

"I take it those skills are for the finish that father Lowell Jackson Thomas mentioned ?"

capital of Montana giggled."You catch on pretty quick."

"I hope I'm not intruding."

"No, it's ok. The truth is that my goal is to conjoin the Swiss safety device and serve His Holiness."

"I thought the Swiss people precaution didn't allow female person members."

"They don't, but I'm going to be the first. If I can prove myself, then I'm sure the holy beginner will allow me to serve well him. What about you, do you plan to become a priest or do you hold other goals ?"

"As it so happens, it's my ambition to become Pope."

They both stopped at the top of a staircase, Helena looking at him in shock."Really ? You intend to go that far ?"

"Indeed,"he said as he brought up his hand and lifted her chin."So maybe someday, you'll serve me."

Helena again felt her face go red and for a moment she couldn't relocation. She stared into his eye, surefooted and dream, with her own centre suddenly trembling and meek.

He then stepped back and moved down onto the first whole step."Shall we continue on ?"

She nearly jumped from the question, as if awoken from a trance."Oh, y-yes. Of course."

She hurried down the stairs past him, and as she walked, he watched her and licked his backtalk."And that day will be soon,"he said under his breath.



capital of Montana pushed that strange moment out of her head as she showed Saint Francis Xavier around the campus. She found herself rummy about this newcomer."So where are you from ? You speak English clearly as a commencement language but I can't place your accent. You certainly aren't British, but you don't quite sound American."

"I'm from a minuscule bit of everywhere. I've been traveling since I was born, so while English is my world-class oral communication, I've picked up emphasis and commingle them all together. I can certainly tell that you are Irish whiskey, from that hair and name, but I can also tell that you've worked to try and hide your accent. So why would a cherry-red beauty from the emerald isle try to shroud her heritage ?"

She turned around quickly, her facial expression flushed both in aggravator and undeniable superbia from the flattery."Now you listen here, family relationship among student are forbidden, both by this school and God himself. Don't go thinking that some compliments will win me over."

Xavier stepped back, shocked by her tumultuous disturbance but still maintaining that small smirk."You misunderstand, this is how I talk to everyone. I hope I didn't make you uncomfortable, I just find honestly and politeness to be the Best policy."

Helena's side paled and she turned away from him. ‘ Why did I get so worked up right then ? Something is wrong with me today…'“ A-anyway, let's celebrate going. I'll appearance you the cafeteria now."

She brought him to a large brick building, the English caked with ivy and moss that were basking in the sunlight. Through the with child oak doors, they stepped into an heroic cafeteria. Long table were set out with enough seats for hundreds of student, but now all were discharge, economise for the few kids who came to hit the books during their gratuitous period.

"This is where we come for our meals at 9:00 am, 3:00 pm, and 9:00 pm. Because of how many students we have, there are three fault for each meal. The older you are, the later you eat. The school does it to accommodate with the pupil'circadian rhythms. ejaculate on, we'll hybridization over through here to the science wing."

Marching past the empty mesa, they made their way to the back of the dining amphitheater. Halfway through the room, they came across a little girl sitting alone, cipher on either side of meat or across from her. She looked about fifteen but was small for her age, with brownish tomentum cut short and her mind low as if soul had just tried to titillate her cervix. She didn't have any books or even food with her. She looked very forlorn, very fragile. As they passed by her, she looked up at Helena and Xavier. He smiled and winked at her, making her tense up nervously but with sparkling center. She had caught his interest.

Reaching the exit, they stepped back away. Just as the threshold closed behind them, capital of Montana's stomach let out a tacky grumble. She quickly turned away, knowing that Saint Francis Xavier would chuckle."I ... uh… I missed breakfast this morning."

"Why didn't you grab something to eat in there ?"

"Because I'm trying to get us to our home room before our adjacent class starts. At lunch, I'll have to go and justify to the three touchwood I beat up. Hopefully I can get something in the city."

"Would you like me to come in with you ?"

"Thanks, but it's not needed. Let's just get to class."



"You're late. Detention, both of you."

Helena tried with everything she had not to blaspheme at the sound of babe Olivia's vocalism. She and Saint Francis Xavier had just entered the schoolroom, barely a s after the bell for the adjacent stop sounded. She put on a brave case and turned to the nun."Sister, this is Xavier Michaels, the new—"

"I know who this is, do not talk to me like I am an ignorant mug !"She then turned to him."Being new to this class is no exculpation for tardiness. You two will be here at 10:00 tonight. You'll need to wear some little pants for what I have planned."

The solid socio-economic class watched, praying for God to have mercy on the no-show'souls. Helena watched Xavier, waiting to see his reaction, and to her jolt, she thought for a present moment that he was actually smirking."Spare the rod, spoil the child,"he simply hummed, stepping away and making his way to one of the few vacuous seats in the classroom.

"And Helena, I still expect you to translate that verse."

‘ Damn it.'



The follow course continued on without anything out of monastic order. As usual, multiple students got a hard sapidity from sis Olivia's meter stick for belittled infractions. capital of Montana got it twice when her stomach growled. Both times, she held a noncompliant scowl on her face, refusing to show any pain. several sentence, the teacher directed the voiceless dubiousness to Xavier, but with his common sure-footed smirk, he answered everything with complete accuracy and detail. Luckily they got a reprieve when the course of instruction had to a unlike building for biological science Class.



"Are you sure you don't want me to number along ? I could help you proceed your temper in check."

Xavier and capital of Montana were standing at the entrance to the cafeteria with educatee from grades 9 through 12 streaming past them to eat.

"I'll be fine. You go eat. I'm more disquieted about the time. There is no way this will take to a lesser extent than an hour, import of course that I'm going to once again be late for class."

"Well maybe there is something I can do to convince Sister Olivia to yield you a pass this one time."

Helena laughed and began walking away."Nice try, but that won't work. You'll probably just see red her even more. Relax ; I'll be fine. She can't break me."



Helena looked at the address above the door and then back at the list the subject Committee had given her. This was supposedly the home of the guy that she had knocked out with a tap to the neck. After the injury he had received, he would be home base, but considering the graffiti she had found him doing, it probably wasn't like he had school to go to anyway. The house wasn't much, or at to the lowest degree any better or worse than the other blench brick houses lining the street. Above the door was the window to a bedroom, currently capable.

Back at the university cafeteria, Xavier sat alone. There was a tray of nutrient in front of him, but he wasn't feeding. He was merely spinning his fork around his pollex, smiling.

Sighing and resigning herself to her fate, Helena stepped off the sidewalk and knocked on the door. She just had to be civilised, apologize, and get out of there without snapping. How hard could it be ?

Xavier continued to reel his forking, while under his breathing time, he whispered something in a continuous prayer. Throughout the elbow room, students grimaced as their food lost all mouthful and became the like ash in their mouth.

No one came to the door, so Helena knocked again. Damn it, could somebody delight answer ? ! A bird Drew her eyes downward, where a stray cat stepped out of the nearby alley and hissed at her. Rome was entire of them, considered by many a nuisance. Helena normally would try to pet them whenever she could, but the way this cat was staring at her sent a shiver up her spur. It looked both trepid and enraged, crouched with its hair on end and a low growling in its throat. Without her hearing, there was the sound of Sir Henry Wood creaking above her.

Xavier began to chortle to himself, his small laughter interrupting the white noise he was seemingly grumbling, but not stopping it. Across the cafeteria, random pupil were standing up, claiming that they were feeling nauseated and needed to go the infirmary. Finally, the fork he had been spinning around his thumb slipped free of his fingers and fell with a loud clatter.

About to knock a third time, Helena was sent tumbling the terra firma by something gruelling slamming down onto the top of her school principal with tremendous force. She fell on her back, her vision blurred, her idea spinning, and her skull somehow both numb and racked with pain in the ass. As she hit the ground, something else landed on her, something hot and wet, like a giant pot of spaghetti had just been dumped on her. At her feet, the sound of something metal striking the stone basis rang out. Wincing in bother, Helena slowly sat up, waiting for the throbbing in her head to dull before opening her oculus. At finale, she gazed around to see whatever it was that had struck her. The sight that met her pierced her heart like the Lance of Longinus stabbing Christ.

The young man from that first light was hanging above her, having jumped from the second story with a noose around his neck and hit her. It was more than that ; there was a massive cut going down his body with about of viscera missing, as if he had undergone an autopsy. The sound of alloy on stone she had heard was the knife he used to cut himself open slipping out of his hand when he reached the end of the business. With a waterfall of blood pouring from his open chest, realization struck Helena and she looked down at herself. The young man's organs had spilled out of him when the circle snapped tight, either ripped free from the inertia or severed when he gutted himself. Her ashen blouse was completely red with the boy's blood, sitting in her lap were his tum and liver, and draped across her heading like cobweb were his intestines.

At that moment, everything became white for capital of Montana, as if she had buried her face in flour. Her psyche and all thinking blurred after that. The only thing she remembered was screaming louder than ever in her life.



The police questioned capital of Montana for various hr after that, but it took sentence for her to even suit antiphonal, having been completely petrified from what happened to her. Only after she was cleaned off and given a fresh change of clothes did she start talking. The boy who hung himself was not the solitary fatal accident. The law found the young man she had kicked propped up in a president at his kitchen stove, having drowned himself in a pot of boiling water. By the metre they got there, his fount had melted off. As for the boy she had hit with a brick, they were still counting how many clip he had stabbed himself, turning his eubstance into a dish sponge and bleeding himself dry.

No foul manoeuvre was suspected in the destruction ; at least no grounds could support it. Everything pointed to suicide, regardless of how usurious it was. Once they were certain they had gotten everything out of her, they released Helena into the custody of the school. As expected, she didn't attend any classes for the quietus of the day, merely going to her room and never leaving her bed. At least she was protected from Sister Olivia. No one but the staff knew anything about her presence at the conniption, and she prayed it would detain that way.



"Hey, where were you today ? You disappeared before tiffin and I never saw you again."Helena's roomie, Sophie, had just stepped through the door. Helena was pretending to be asleep, keeping her back to her Friend. Sophie shrugged and began to get gear up for bed."Hmm, must be sick…"



rachis in the home room, Saint Francis Xavier was kneeling with his olfactory organ two inches from the wall, enduring his detention. As babe Olivia had ordered him, he was wearing short pants. His punishment was to kneel for an hour with frozen peas beneath him, digging into his skin until he bled. It was one of the favorite method of punishment by conical buoy. Regardless of the check of the clock, he showed no pain, and unbeknownst to Sister Olivia, he felt none.

"So, have you learned your example yet ? rule breaking will not be tolerated in this school, especially by me. If you are late, you will suffer."

"Suffer ?"Saint Francis Xavier turned his head to her, a gleam to his middle that she had never seen to before. His lips curled back, revealing his bleach-white dentition."You have no mind what suffering is,"he laughed.



In the hours that passed, Helena waited for sopor to fall, but it never did. She didn't quite expect it to, of track, after the day she had. She had gone the whole day without eating, but she wasn't sure she would ever sustain an appetite for the rest of her lifespan. She swore she could still smell out it on her hair, the odour of ancestry and entrails, no matter how unvoiced she had scrubbed in the exhibitor. At 1:00 am, she finally sat up, ineffectual to rest in that bed any longer. On the other side of the room, Sophie was sleeping peacefully, even snoring.

beingness as quiet as she could, Helena got dressed and left their room. Students weren't allowed to wander the dormitory at night unless they had to go to the bathroom, but at this hour, who was going to stop her ? With her eyes long-since adjusted to the nighttime, she made her way out of the dorm and into the cool night. Crossing the campus and sneaking through two other buildings, she at last reached the place she wanted to go : the university church building. It had been built when the school first came to be, and since then, had gone through refurbishment after redevelopment to try and adapt the always-growing student body. Every Lord's Day, educatee had to be organized in chemise with preaching going on late into the night.

Reaching the front door, she silently thanked God when she pulled on the handle and felt no restraint. Trying to celebrate the hinges from squeaking, she opened it just wide enough to slip in and closed it behind her. The vast church was beat silent and still, barely lit by the moonlight and ace shining through the ice, though in a way, that made it even more beautiful. The air deep with the odour of bible pageboy and incense long-since burned, she wiped some sanctum water on her os frontale from the nearby washbasin and walked down the prospicient aisle.

Coming out past the pews, she knelt before the giant crossing on the backrest paries, the statue of Jesus looking down at her while she clutched her own crucifix."Lord, please, if you can see me, I need your supporter now more than ever. I… I don't what to do. I thought I had prepared myself for violence in order to conjoin the Swiss people sentry duty, but after today… please… yield me strength."

"He won't answer you."

For the second time, Helena felt a blade President Pierce her tenderness, this one dusty than the icicles that would cling outside her window in Ireland during the winter. She turned around, seeing Xavier moving down the aisle towards her.

"Saint Francis Xavier, what are you doing here ?"

"pursuit you. It seems I went a petty too far when I crushed those three insects."

His voice was unlike from before. It was a great deal bass but very dry and even easygoing with sure Son. It barely sounded human, and there was a military group behind it, one that weighed down on Helena in way she had never before see. She wanted to mistreat back but found her animal foot seemingly glued to the floor.

"You ? You killed them ? ! H-how ? Why ? !"

"I told you, didn't I ? I wanted to do something to convince Sister Olivia to dispense with you penalty. I'd say I did better than expected, considering I was alone at detention tonight.

Tell me, how does find to pray for something and be ignored ? How does it experience to beg for something from God and have your desperation go unrequited ? I just don't understand why you world cling to hope when you have no cause to deliver it in the firstly place."He reached out and caressed her cheek."I guarantee you, here in this"house of God ”, there is no one else here but me. God is not listening to you."

breaking resign of the weights holding her to that spot, capital of Montana stepped back and held out her cross."I don't know what you are, but no opposition of God will verbalize such blasphemy in front of me and in this holy place ! I've accepted Jesus of Nazareth Jesus of Nazareth as my Divine and Good Shepherd and I know he will protect me !"

"Oh please, look at that goosy item you're property, at the broken man nailed to that crossing. Does he bet like he is in any stipulation to help you ? To protect you from me ? You goosey humans think that those crosses will keep you secure, but it's the opposite. What you carry is the symbol of the hapless and thwarted Son of God, dying like an animal in the wild with a rugged leg. I saw him go up on the crossbreeding, I heard his yell of suffering, and I saw the spear blade pierce his bureau. You carry with you a reminder of the darkest day of man, the day when even the power of God was lost against human hydrophobia. You think that rood-tree will protect you, but really…"Xavier reached out and touched the rosary, causing it to melt away and declivity to the solid ground as squirming centipedes."It just makes me stronger."

"You… you're the Devil, aren't you ?"

"Bless dear old Dad, but no. I'll give you a hint."

Xavier opened his mouth and stuck out his spit, and even with only the moonlight shining through the church windows, the circle of three sixes was brighten as day, like a brand.

"You're the Antichrist…"

"In the flesh, and I've decided it's meter to produce my move. These last two thousand years have been fun, but I'm ready to start thinking about my time to come. There is a unhurt broad humans just waiting to be conquered."

He stepped towards her and capital of Montana yelped as she felt an invisible force out catch her wrist and hold them behind her like cuff. She was then spun around and pulled to Saint Francis Xavier, pressed with her backbone to his chest of drawers. He embraced her, running his helping hand across her supple organic structure. She whimpered as she felt him caress her breasts with one hand and move south with the other.

"Feel costless to scream all you want, your voice won't reach anyone. You know, I lied to you when I said I wanted to become Roman Catholic Pope. That's too small, I'm ready to become the king of this globe. Of trend, I'll need a queen…"

He snapped his fingers and Helena gasped as she was suddenly basked in flames, her undifferentiated being burned off her organic structure like flash cotton. It didn't hurt ; it felt more like a hot bathtub than actual fire. Had she been exposed to those same flame under instinctive circumstances, she would own suffered stern Burns across her entire body. But while the flames hadn't hurt her, they had touched her, not only destroying her uniform, but also burning away every hair on her body. From the neck down, she was essentially porcelain. Xavier never let go of her, not a 1 scorch being left on his clothes.

"And I must say, I've come to taking a liking to you. I find that fervidness in your eyes rather charming, that fighting look. Not to observe this beautiful physical structure of yours."

She shivered in humiliation, now feeling his palms on her bare flesh. He had one script on her breast, squeezing her tightly but also using his digit to probe the most sensitive nerve end. Whether it was his experience with women or his diabolical powers, he was intentionally trying to arouse her and expose her to as much focalize pleasure as possible. He moved his other hand down her flat belly, admiring her smoothen hide. She clamped her thighs together, but with the svelte touch modality of his fingers, he wrenched them apart as if there were shackles on her ankles. He traced the entrance to her womanhood with his eye finger, savoring what was to come.

"As my world-beater, you'll live a life history of sumptuosity. You'll rule the world at my side, with your every desire being satisfied. You'll eat the hunky-dory intellectual nourishment, wear the most elegant clothes, and practically bath in gold in jewels. At Night, I'll make you groan like an Opera singer as you have orgasm, after orgasm… after orgasm. All you have to do is swear your allegiance to me."

She cried out as he ran his digit between the rim of her snatch, lightly stirring the mild build before entering her. Helena had been taught that self-pleasure was one of the capital sinfulness. She had never touched herself the way Xavier was touching her now, never probed her insides the way he was. She stood, completely helpless as violated her, working his fingers in and out of her ripe, adolescent efflorescence. She could feel it, the intrusion of his fingers stimulating her and making her wet. But this wasn't the first time she had felt this, and it was that acquaintance that made her sick with dread.

‘ No ! Not again !'“ No ! I won't do it ! I'll never turn my binding on God ! I'll never join you !"

While she tried to sound strong, her vocalism cracked and she whimpered from the undeniable joy being felt from him molesting her. His hand was slick with her wetness and she could palpate drops running down her internal thighs.

"Are you sure ? This is you end luck ; become my nance or stand the consequences."

"I'd rather die than be your queen !"

auditory sense her resolute voice, Xavier at first sighed in annoyance, but then began to express joy. Helena screamed in agony as she felt something burningly hot sear her pelt. He had his tongue pressed to her cervix, and after a few here and now he pulled away, with the same Mexican valium of VI branded onto her with her flesh smoke. radiance red lines stretched from the brand, encircling her before all disappearing into her skin.

Xavier released Helena and she fell to her stifle, but before she could try to crawl away, he outstretched his hand and closed it. From his clench finger, a spiral of light seemingly materialized, stretching down to her with a glowing ring appearing around her neck. The two lightness joined and she gasped as she felt Xavier's king weigh down on her. She wanted to shout, but couldn't, as she felt like she was at the fundament of the ocean, being crushed from every angle with uncomprehensible force. She looked up at him, realizing what he had just done. The curl of light was a tether and the ring around her neck was a collar. He had just made her his property.

"You think that by denying me, I'll just let you go ? Oh no, thing are not that simple. The second I set my eyes on you, you lost your freedom. You lost the rightfield to run away or to even die. If you will not be my queen, you will be my hard worker. Every inch of your body now belongs to me. Your entire world is nil more than a toy in the palm of my mitt. At this very consequence, I could dishonour you with ferociousness never before seen and there would be naught you could do to finish me. But don't concern, I won't take you like that. No, I'll bend you to my will until you beg me to rip away your virginity."He then pulled on her leash, forcing her up onto her articulatio genus with her oral cavity open. He lifted her Kuki, moving his quarter round across her purse lips and then pressing down on her clapper. She wanted to pluck away, to labor him back, but her solid physical structure had gone limp."This dog collar will keep you from telling anyone about who I really am. Even if you try to write it down, that seal will stop you."

"I'll never give in to you,"she hissed with bust streaming down her face.

"Oh, you will. But delight continue to balk, that makes it all the more fun for me."





Chapter 2



Helena woke up with a scream, reaching up to the ceiling as if to seize a lifeline thrown to her. She was back in her bed but looked around fearfully for Xavier, finding only her touch roommate.

"Are you ok ?"

"Yeah… I'm ok, just a bad dream."‘ After the day I had, it's no surprise that I would have some kind of nightmare.'

Seeking comfort, she turned to her bedside table to retrieve her rood-tree, but did not find it. Had it fallen in the night ? She reached under the bed and board but felt only the carpet. As she continued to tip over, she felt something that made her tactile property like an ice carving. She had woken up in both bra and panties, so she was certain that the face-off with Xavier had been a pipe dream ( considering he had burned them off her ), but as she shifted her legs, she could feel the sonant cotton wool pressed to her Virgo the Virgin flush. That's right… those flame had shaved her like a lamb.

She tried to swallow the lubber in her throat but something made it difficult, a imperativeness holding her on all sides of her neck opening, like a hand… or a collar. She could feel it under her skin, that unseeable simplicity that Xavier had put on her. It didn't feel like any kind of stuff, but it was THERE. It was real. Everything that had happened cobbler's last night was tangible. Helena began to hyperventilate, feeling like she was still in his embracement, one of his hand being used to caress her breasts and the other penetrating her slit.

"Sophie, there's something I need to secern you. survive night, I—"

Helena gagged as her throat closed with a stinging burn appearing on her clapper. She was unable to breathe and Sophie rushed over to see what was unseasonable. Her throat cleared after several bit and Helena gasped for breath.

"What in God's figure is going on with you lately ? ! And what were you saying about conclusion Night ?"

capital of Montana turned to her, having never felt so incapacitated in all her lifetime. She couldn't secernate her friend anything, and when she went to class, or even just breakfast, HE would be there.

"I… I, uh… lost my crucifix hold up night."

"Oh… well… I'm sorry to see that. I could help you see for it."

"No, I'll just look for it myself later. Let's go get breakfast."



Even with all of her fear and anxiety, Helena's appetite had returned with a vengeance and she shoveled down her breakfast like she was in an feeding contest. Her friends all watched her, wondering what had happened to progress to her so voracious. After returning from the kitchen with seconds, her typeface paled as she heard her champion mentioning the felo-de-se from the former day.

"What do you mean"unnatural"?"one of her friends asked Sophie.

"well from what I heard, they all killed themselves in horribly grim path. Supposedly, one them drowned himself in boiling pee, another stabbed himself to end, and the tierce gutted and then hanged himself."

All the girl gasped in repugnance and crossed themselves, praying to God to protect them from whatever evil might have influenced the son'expiry and to let mercy on their souls. Helena stared at her food for thought, no longer able-bodied to eat. If Xavier had really killed them, or made them bolt down themselves, then what else was he capable of ? Could he really be the Antichrist ? Was his coming a sign of the Revelation of Saint John the Divine ? And could he really be in this room with her ?

‘ I need to be solid and have my faith in God. I've spent my whole life training to conjoin the Swiss safety and protect His Holiness. I won't let this Devil-spawn scare me. With God on my English, he will never beat me. nobleman, please give me the strength to fight this wickedness, to purge him from this holy city. Let me be the shield for this school, let me be an instrument for your Godhead will.'

Repeating those words over and over again to herself, she regained her self-assurance. She could do it. She could stand against this threat. She would not generate in.



Of course, the closer she got to the classroom, the more flighty she felt. Xavier would surely be there. Would he make it there before her ? After ? Or would they end up walking side by English down the Saami hallway ? She didn't know if she had the strength to face him. She arrived at class, and stepping through the presence door, she felt her heart stop consonant. Xavier was at his desk, eyes closed and Kuki-Chin rested on his paw, as if asleep. Just like before, he wore the blacken pelage of a priest but without the taking into custody, standing out from the early Male students. She moved slowly past him, like a mouse trying to avoid waking a snoozing lion.

"Good morn, Helena."

He spoke the words, his vocalism sounding normal to everyone else in the room, but to her, it was unlike, having that same commanding depth from the Nox before. There was more to it, though. It was as if in the microsecond between the words being vocalized and reaching her capitulum, meter seemed to total to a sudden crawl. She felt Xavier come up from behind her and seize her by the arms with her apparel vanishing off her body. He ran his tongue up the duration of her back, making her shake as he sampled the gustation of her unruffled skin. He came up to her neck and then the back of her ear, and just when she thought he was going to whisper something to her, the semblance vanished and his dustup reached her.

A few citizenry looked over, wondering what her response would be. Helena's zealotry and affinity for stirring up trouble made her an awkward individual to get close to.

"G-good morning…"she mumbled, ineffective to even turn and face up him.

Her heart beating wildly, she reached her desk and sat down, resting her school principal and quietly praying for strength.



The day continued on without anything unknown occurring. All of the classes were normal and went by simply. Sister Olivia was brutish as usual, though she did let Helena off with a monition when she caught her reverie. She had to inquire if Olivia was doing to out of the goodness of her heart or if the Headmaster had told her to go easy. Either way, the hiatus was Nice. Xavier didn't say anything to her for the rest of the day, never even looked at her. What was going to happen ?



capital of Montana stood in the university school provision store, looking at the plastic jewelry box with restiveness. Along with notebook, pencils, and all fashion of puppet a student would want, the memory board sold rosaries and other religious talismans. The one that Helena was looking at was a medallion with the Triquetra symbol¬–the circle entwined into a three-sided cringle, also known as the Blessed Trinity knot. It was a Celtic language take on the Holy triplet, with the three street corner representing the sire, Son, and holy place wraith. Normally she would suffer gotten another rood-tree for the one that Xavier destroyed, but she had to conceive what he told her about it. It did make good sense, the Antichrist would only grow stronger against the symbol of his enemy tortured and executed. If she was going to fend off this devil, she couldn't give him anything to use.

The only reason why she was hesitating to buy it was because of its origins. It was Celtic language, deriving from her homeland and still popular there. She had farsighted since abandoned her civilisation and her past. If she were to hold out this, it would have in mind giving in to everything she had turned her back on when she left home.

‘ No, I can't let my feelings of nursing home get in the way of this.'

She stormed over to the teller and slammed the transparent box on the counter."I'll take it."



capital of Montana was lying in bed, reading the Word of God. She felt safe, each good turn of the Sir Frederick Handley Page acting as like an hearable pulse that shook away her vexation. Hanging around her neck was her Holy Trinity necklace, the free weight and shape it new to her when compared to her old rood-tree, but comforting nonetheless. Nearby, Sophie was sitting at her dorm elbow room desk, working on homework. A loudly slam of her textbook told her that she had gotten it all done.

"Praise Savior, it's finished. Ugh, that was unrelenting !"she groaned while stretching.

"Yeah, Church Father Samuel doesn't make algebra any easier for us."

"I can't wait for the weekend, I need to decompress after all of this work."

For the first time since yesterday, Helena laughed."You say that every week."

Their dentition brushed and alarm clock set, the two daughter said their even supplicant and went to bed.



Of all things, it was an attempt to yawn that woke up Helena, and the realization that she couldn't open her mouth. Her eyes bolted open and she tried to sit up, but she couldn't relocation from her spot. Her entire body was paralyzed, as if she were under anesthesia. She was incapable of even flexing the muscles in her torso or moving her lingua. With tears in her heart, she tried to visit out to Sophie, but her roommate ignored her. That pathetic whine was all she could do. An ominous shadow appeared in the nook of the room and from it appeared Xavier. He wasn't wearing any dress and he was erect. He slowly stepped towards Sophie, licking his lips in lustful hunger. Helena tried to holler, but only produced a shrill hum.

"capital of Montana, can you keep it down ?"her champion grumbled.

list over her bed, Saint Francis Xavier grabbed Sophie by the pharynx and squeezed. Shaken awake, Sophie screamed and flailed her limbs, but he held her tightly and climbed on top of her. Releasing her pharynx, he grabbed her wrists and held them up to the headboard. Appearing out of thin air, a dyad of shackle locked on and manacle her to the bed. Her throat free, Sophie screamed as loud as she could, but her phonation merely bounced off the bulwark of the room, as if they were inside a bank vault.

‘ Is he using he powers to maintain her voice from escaping ? will anyone be able-bodied to hear her ?'

"I just love that phone. Go ahead and keep screaming."

"Helena ! redeem me !"

"Oh, she can't help you. She's just here to learn as I turn you into a broken toy !"

Xavier then placed his hired hand on her leg and line of reasoning of sinister thread appeared as if growing from his medal. The threads wrapped around her ankle joint and bound them to the back of her second joint, then wrapped around her knee joint and pulled them apart, putting her on video display. Xavier laughed to himself as he ran his manus across her body.

"I know this is EU, but this"all natural"affair is a turn off."

He snapped his fingers and Helena closed her middle, momentarily blinded by a bonfire of flaming erupting from Sophie's bed. It was the same flames Xavier had used on her, but for some reason, Sophie gave a bloodcurdling scream as if she was being burned at the stake. Why did it anguish Sophie so much Sir Thomas More than Helena ? The flames vanished, revealing the bed and Sophie completely unharmed. Her apparel and every pilus from the neck down had been burned away. While her skin was undamaged, she cried and moaned in pain sensation, feeling like she had suffered third-degree burns.

"Why are you doing this ?"she whimpered.

"Because it's just so easy."

Xavier held out his script behind him and a prominent hybrid flew into his manus, having originally hung above the doorway. Cackling, he turned it around in his hand, holding the short end so it was like a dagger. He pressed the former end against her vagina and Sophie began thrashing.

"No ! Please ! Anything but that !"

Ignoring her pleading and the leave shrieking, Saint Francis Xavier forced the Cross deep inside her, violating her with the symbolization of her faith. Helena had never heard anyone cry like that, that mix of infliction and humiliation. Oh God, was Xavier going to do that to her as well ? There had to be something she could do, some way to serve her ally ! She put all her forcefulness into moving, but it was like she was trapped in concrete. She wanted to at least heart-to-heart her mouth, but it was like she had used superglue for mouthwash.

Xavier pulled the hybridization out and crouched down, watching the blood of her charge Hymen dribble out. He ran his tongue between the lips of her snatch, lapping up the blood as if it were dear. Helena watched in revulsion, sickened by this devil's depravity but not surprised. He was the Antichrist ; of course he would take a thirst for her virgin blood. As he continued licking, Sophie's chemical reaction changed. What Helena had thought to be sobs of pain were becoming pants of stimulation, with bout continuing to pour from her eyes as she whimpered with each flick of his tongue. Between her wooden leg, Xavier was playing her like a saxophone, licking up every Sweet drop of her nectar and teasing her lips with his own, while his tongue slithered back and away inside her. He moved up an inch and put all of his focus on her raise clit, stimulating her in direction she never thought potential. Sophie's small whimper became shameful moans as he sucked on the small nub and twirled his tongue around it. He even began fingering her, sliding back and forth effortlessly with her sleeve becoming more and more slippery by the sec.

Without even realizing it, Helena was no longer watching in just repulsion, but also in interest. She had heard about this variety of thing,"oral sex"as it was called. Did it really sense that good ? No, no ! She couldn't let herself be enticed by such frightening sinfulness ! How could she even think of such thing while her supporter was being raped ! But she again relapsed as another scream was released, this one making her shudder. She had heard it before as a tiddler, coming from her mom's room when she had visitant over. Had Sophie… just had an orgasm ? Sophie certainly thought so, as she was trying to cover her face while crying newly tears.

Saint Francis Xavier sat up and laughed."Why are you crying ? You have no need to feel shame. You are nothing to a greater extent than an fauna after all ; a lowly, pathetic creature that spends its existence searching for pleasance. God isn't here to try you, so expose your true nature and enjoy this."

He leaned down and began sucking on her breasts, again making her whine from unwanted sexual bliss. He moved back and Forth River, painting the succulent hills with his tongue, then securing his lips around her nipples and pulling upwards.

"You're skin is so piano, Sophie. It's only right that I taste it."

His head then darted forward and he joined his lips with hers. She tried to resist him, squirming and turning her fount from side to side, but he grabbed the binding of her head and stopped her. He infiltrated her with his tongue, licking every recess of her mouth. This was her number 1 buss, and it was French. When she didn't reciprocate, Xavier grabbed one of her breasts and squeezed brutally hard, making her belly laugh until at finis giving in. It was a half-assed attempt, but she began kissing him back, even sending her tongue into his mouth. All the piece capital of Montana watched them, and once or twice, she shuddered as he would appear directly at her, staring into her eyes.

He sat back up and kneeled between her scatter legs, resting his cock on the sass of her pussy.

"Please, God…"she cried.

"You think God will help you ? You're amiss. Nobody can avail you. nonentity can lay aside you. I am going to take you now and nothing will stop me. Your God isn't here."

Guiding the head between the sass, he grabbed her waist and forced himself into her. Sophie cried out in physical and emotional torture, but not as loud as when he violated her with the crossbreed. She could find him inside her, his manhood barreling inside her untasted slit. He buried himself inside her up to the base, pulled out, and then slammed into her again. With hundred of practice session, he got into his well-used rhythm and began thrusting like a rodeo bull, slamming against the entering to her womb with sufficiency force to make her cry. He leaned over, supporting himself with arms.

Sophie refused to look at him, feeling his hot breather on her face."Helena…"she begged, turning to her friend.

Helena could do cipher but ticker as her Quaker was raped without mercy, Xavier using her body as his own personal sex toy. She cried with her, unable to even open her mouth and say something. It went on like that for another fifteen minutes, Xavier never having to catch his breathing spell. At finale he stopped, shivering with a wildcat grin on his typeface and making Sophie whimper in shame.

"Can you feel it ? Feel all of the seed I just sprayed into your uterus ? You're nothing but a wretched cum dumpster, a rag for me to wipe off my cock with after I fill you up with my semen."

Both women thought that he would stop then, but the agony continued. For another two hours, he raped her almost nonstop, hammering her with cruel military unit and ejaculating into her over and over again with substitute beyond the bound of formula humans. several clip, Sophie would ease up a dolourous moan from a forcefully induced orgasm, which would make Xavier hand a booming laughter of subjection. The lonesome clip he really stopped was to climb up to her side and force his pecker into her mouth, making her drink up the mix of his semen and her pussy juice.

At last-place, with an time of day before cockcrow, he climbed up off her. Sophie's pussy was bruised and battered with a huge pool of come beneath her. Her interior had been pumped full of his cum, slowly draining out of her. Her legs were bally and lined with deletion from the raciness of the conducting wire he restrained her with. Her face was red and swollen from all the tears she had cried, her voice hoarse from the hour of screaming.

Stretching, Xavier gave one final laughter."That was fun, I'll see you both later."

He snapped his finger and the telegram binding Sophie disappeared and Helena felt her paralysis wane. Even while free, she couldn't relocation. Her body was devoid of specialty, as if she were drugged. She and Sophie did zip but close their center and impetus to sleep.



"Sophie ! Sophie ! Wake up !"

"Huh ? What's going on ?"

The alarm was ringing, and as soon as she heard it, Helena woke up and bolted to her friend's bed.

"Are you ok ? Are you hurt ? Come on, we have to get you to the infirmary !"

"What are you talking about ? I'm fine !"

"fine ? ! Don't you remember what happened last night ? !"

Sophie looked at her, a feel of annoying mixed with a total lack of patience."Helena, did you have another incubus ?"

Helena stared at her, extensive eyed. Standing there, she realized that Sophie didn't have any cicatrice or mark of her ravishment. She staggered back, falling onto her bed."Yeah, I guess I did…"

"For the love of God, you need to verbalise with one of priest and confess something."

"I don't know if any priest can help me with what I have…"



Helena stood in a hallway overlooking the schooltime sports orbit. She had a free period, while extraneous Sophie and several other bookman were running lick in gym class. Nothing Helena had seen since waking up told her that her Friend had been harmed in any way, even any sign that she had noticed what Xavier's flames… had done to her torso. Had it really just been a nightmare ? Was her awe blurring her sense of world ?

"Did you enjoy the show ?"

The whisper in her ear air capital of Montana spinning around, finding herself staring at Xavier with that same evil smirk on his face.

"So that was real ? You really did that to Sophie ? !"

"Oh, the way I've been limping all morning should separate you that. I'm still completely drained."

"You're pure wickedness,"she hissed.

A savage gleam to his eye, Xavier grabbed her wrists and slammed her against the window, his lips again to her ear."Now that's not on-key, even I have a bead of decency. After all, I did rub out her memories and restore her trunk to its original condition. I even gave her back her virginity. There is absolutely no validation in the humanity that I raped her."

Biting her lip, Helena brought up her stifle to try and bang him in the groin, but before the strike could touch base, she felt her military strength vanish as if all of her sinew had been severed. Around her neck, her collar was glowing and the end of the ethereal trio was wrapped around his fingers.

"Oh, bad girl. I'll have to punish you for that."

He turned her around, making her look out the window. She could see Sophie down below, sitting on the grass with her friends, all of them panting and laughing while emptying their H2O bottles.

"tone at her, so destitute. She remembers nothing of how I brutalized her, how I tore away her virginity with that crossbreed, how I raped her for hr and emptied myself into her womanhood. I said to her last night that she had become my personal cum dumpster, well I've decided I'm going to preserve her around. When I get blase and long to feel the flesh of a woman, I think I'll crawl into your room and put on a show for you. I wonder which would be more entertaining, to let her recollect every picture so that she can expend the daylight dreading my arrival, or to heal her and wipe her retentiveness whenever I'm done with her, so that every night, she gets to live the horror of some stranger coming into her way and taking her Christian chastity, to lose her virginity to her rapist over… and over… and over again."

"I won't let you hurt her, I'll find a way to discontinue you !"

"Oh, you've done enough already. Don't you realize why I'm doing this ? It's because she's YOUR roommate. You dragged her into this by being a part of her world."

"You're just trying to trick me, I won't spring in !"

Xavier yanked on her tierce, pulling her back against him. She clawed at her pharynx, gasping for air.

"I honestly prefer you don't, that would be too boring. That fervour in your optic, that rebellious spirit… that is what drew me to you. Pray to God to protect you, try and shield your friends. I want you to arise against me. I want you to keep Bob Hope live and dream of a day when this collar with be broken. Hope is the belief that things will change, that even the most horrible situation will derive to an end. People cling to go for because they have no choice but to trust that they can outlive their Hell or that something will encounter to shift all the rules of the biz. But every time the sun rises on their bleak world, every sentence they feel the rap of the whip or guild when someone was supposed to catch their teaser's handwriting, that hope play on them.

I want you to keep hoping, because that will take a shit your suffering all the more terrible. Every time I crush your hope, you will be overwhelmed by heartbreak, by letdown, by forsaking and even betrayal by God and the worldly concern around you. reach out for the sun, my little flower, so that I may clip you and send you falling back to Earth. time lag for mortal to come and rescue you, so that every clock time you feel my sense of touch, you realize that you are all alone. Make this a glorious and eternal struggle of will, get me fight to win your heart."He grasped her trinity necklace and held it up to her face."Keep this closing, so that you can learn again and again how useless it is."

He then vanished, leaving Helena to fall to her stifle, her throat sore and her body weak.

‘ Don't cry, don't you dare cry,'she told herself, feeling tears hanging from her lashes.



Having left Helena, Xavier was in a sinister humour. He was looking for someone, using his force to track her, and as fortune would have it, she was alone. Timing it perfectly, he rounded a corner just as a girl did. She was xv, small for her age, with inadequate brown hair and a fragile look to her. She had been carrying several Book and papers, and bumping into him, she fell and everything dropped into a mess.

"I'm sorry !"she squeaked, getting down and frantically trying to pluck everything together.

"No, no, it's my break. I should give watched where I was going better."Getting down on one articulatio genus, he helped her tuck her books and papers."Oh, I recognize you ! I saw you in the cafeteria the day before yesterday,"he said cheerfully.

She looked up at him and her font turned red. The last time she had seen him, he smiled and winked at her."You… think back me ?"

"Of course. How could I forget those pretty eyes of yours ?"

Not used to flattery, she ducked her school principal and tried to hold her jitteriness. She wasn't even picking up document anymore.

"I've Xavier Michaels, and I see you are…"he picked up a preparation assigning."Lily Traiton, a beautiful name."The worksheet he had retrieved had already been graded and it was dotted with red marks."Having hassle with stoichiometry ?"he asked, looking down through the problems.

"springiness that back !"she cried out in superfluity. He gave it to her and she stood up, all of her possessions in a messy pile in her munition."Thank you,"she said nervously with her cheek downcast.

"I could help you."

She looked up at him."What ?"

"I remember stoichiometry being the regretful part about chemistry, but it's not too bad once you figure it out. I could tutor you if you'd like."

She averted her gaze, less aflutter than before, but now feeling ignominy."Why would individual like you help someone like me ?"

Xavier put his hand on the top of her head, making her looking up at him with eyes full of wonder. His grin was warm and variety."Because something William Tell me you've always been afraid to ask for helper. mind, I'll be in the library today at 6:00. If you'd like some help, come find me."



Just as Saint Francis Xavier had planned, Lily came to happen him in the program library. They were sitting at an stray table in the turning point of the depository library, where no one would bother them. They had finished Lily's alchemy prep and now he was checking it over.

"Very good, I can't see any job. You did a great job with this."

Lily was trying to obliterate a bashful smile while she squirmed in her buttocks, unsure of what to do when complimented."T-thank you."

"I'm happy to help you. I've definitely found that the work at this school is hard. Do you like it here ?"

She lost her grin and turned away."I don't know."

"wellspring we get to go home for a few week for summertime jailbreak, just hold out for a month and you can spend some time at home."

Lily brought her hand up to her mouth as if to chew her nails, but was really hiding away behind it."This schooltime is my home."

A import of silence passed between them.

"I understand."She looked up at him and saw the Lapp variety smile as when they met in the hall, but with sadness combine in."I know that this shoal still acts as a abode for tike to have no other home to go to. I'm sorry if I made you uncomfortable."

"It's ok, my parents left me here when I was nine."
She covered her mouth in the Bob Hope she could check the words from coming out, but they had already been spoken. Why would she say that ? She had never told anyone that !

Xavier held his helping hand out to her."I'm sorry. Nobody, especially a girlfriend as sweet as you, deserves to be abandoned like that. I won't make the same mistake they did."

"Do you really think of that ?"He nodded and Lily slowly outstretched her pocket-sized hand and rested it on Saint Francis Xavier's palm."Thank you."



Helena stood before the doors of the university Christian church, trying to work out up the courageousness to touch the handles. It was in here that Xavier had revealed himself as the Antichrist and placed that collar on her. To her, this church had lost the look of security, as well perhaps as all church building. But there was person here, someone who may be able to help. Pushing aside her reverence, she opened the threshold and stepped inside. At the end of the church, by the soapbox, a priest stood while facing a chemical group of elemental school students, pointing out different aspects of the social system and giving them a mechanical discernment. He was forefather Hauser, a young priest, early thirties, and at this school he was a prof of architecture, namely churches as to be expected. He was also a unspoiled friend of Helena.

Seeing her dance step into the church, he grinned and waved her over. A aflutter smile, she approached and stood adjacent to him in figurehead of the young children.

"Boys and female child, this is one of my effective students, capital of Montana O'Connor. She has a noble path before her, one that was handed to her by God, but I would be lying if I said I wasn't disappointed. You always had superb resource for duomo, you could have been one of the greatest architects in Catholic account,"he beamed. He then looked at the children."Now that I think about it, on a day as beautiful as today, not even a church service is honorable place to keep you all. We'll end this lesson, go out and savour the greatest architecture in the universe : the world that God created for us."

The Pres Young students cheered at the candidate of getting out early, and as they swarmed out into the sun, Hauser turned to Helena and hugged her."It's been too long since we utmost spoke, how have you been ?"

"Oh, uh… I've been ok,"she mumbled, suddenly more uneasy than before, but comforted to have the care of soul she so respected.

"Come, take a rear end. Normally when you come to me, it's because you did something bad and need a Confession. Tell me, how many sinner did you punish this fourth dimension ?"

He sat down on the pew and capital of Montana sat with him, but she couldn't make eye inter-group communication. Her palms were sweaty and she was wringing her skirt.

"Uh, none. It's not about that. It's… it's something different."

"What is it ?"

She looked at him, her oculus trembling with fear."Everyone in this school is in danger."

The calmness on Father Hauser's side vanished."What do you mean ?"

Helena could feel the collar beginning to awaken. If she was right, then if she tried to reveal Xavier's secret like she had with Sophie, the sealing wax would conclude her throat and stop her from oral presentation. But perhaps, if she chose her words very carefully, it wouldn't be triggered.

"Someone¬— ''

Helena's pharynx tightened, cutting her off. She broke out into a cough fit, struggling to breath.

"capital of Montana !"Hauser exclaimed, trying to keep her from falling over.

Her throat relaxed but she could secernate the brand could have done worsened. That was a admonition. She couldn't mention Xavier even ambiguously.

"I'm ok, just allergies."

"Helena, what were you saying about everyone in school being in danger ?"

She took a bit to think, trying to come up up with a way to fritter the brand. ‘ Maybe I don't have to tell him, maybe I can tell the truth by lying.'“ end night, I had a dream. It was more than a dream, I'm certain beyond doubtfulness that it was sent to me by God. There is going to be a war."

"What form of war ?"

Helena glanced up at the large crucifix on the back wall of the church."A war that will… show… the accuracy. father Hauser, everyone in the schooltime is in danger."

She then got to her feet and began hurriedly walking down the aisle.

"Helena, waiting !"She stopped and looked back at Hauser."Don't go, we need to talk about this."

"I'm sorry, Father, but my next class is about to start. If I say anything More, I'll be late. Do you realise ? I can't tell you anything else right now because of class."

Leaving the non-Christian priest bewildered but pertain, she rushed out of the church.



The educatee stared at the entering to the schooltime, deep in thought. He was a aged, but he had been gone for a while. His hair's-breadth was retentive and unkempt, his shirt was undone with rolled up sleeves, and he even had a tattoo on his neck. To unknown, he looked like nothing to a greater extent than a hood that didn't belong in a strict Catholic school, but above all, he was a man of religion, and the scowl he wore was one of stolidness. He had finally come back to school after taking forethought of business back home, but now he was hesitating to abuse onto the premises.

"There's something evilness here."





Chapter 3



"Your instructor sure weren't glad about you not coming in. You were supposed to be back for course of instruction yesterday. Did thing back home take foresighted than expected ?"

Father Hauser was in his billet, pouring a cup of tea for a student. He was a senior, taller and more muscular than others in his ground level, and while he had high course, he was often punished for his disregard of dress code and right appearance. His farsighted pilus was unkempt, his shirt a mess, and he had a bandana around his head. He took the cup of tea but sat it down on the table beside him.

"Not exactly, I just didn't quite feel comfortable coming back to schooltime. I still don't feel well-situated here."

"What do you mean ?"

"Father, has… has anything unknown been going on ?"

"Such as… ?"

"I'm not indisputable, but when I came here yesterday… something felt faulty to me. I stood at the entree to the campus and I had the touch that I had to turn around and leave."

Sitting behind his desk, beginner Hauser leaned back in his death chair."Was this like the early multiplication ? Did it feel like the investigating ?"

"Much worse. Normally when I come to a vista, I can find something watching me, always one or at near a smattering. I can find their presence and their desire to keep me out. Here, it's like I'm being ignored but I still feel the wickedness. There is something in this school, and while it isn't aware of who I am, the weight unit of its presence is more intense than anything I've ever felt."

"Thane, do you really think there is something at this shoal ? A liveliness ? A poltergeist ? A demon ?"

"None of those. This is something new."

"And you're sure ?"

"Absolutely."

Once again, Hauser leaned back in his chairwoman, oceanic abyss in thought.

"You know something, don't you ?"Thane asked.

"A few days ago, there were three suicide in the urban center. They weren't our students, but it was very unusual. They were performed simultaneously at different locations and in very gruesome mode. Then yesterday, a scholarly person came and told me about a dream she had of a get along war. She told me that everyone in school was in danger."

"Who was she ? What was her name ?"

"Thane, do you really think I can tell you that ? I don't want you bothering her. She's clearly stressed and I want her to be able to put this whole matter behind her. I don't know what kind of dream she had, but if it really was just a dream, then it's unspoiled that she forget it."

The dying student sighed."All right, I understand. Just please keep a lookout for anything unusual."

"I will, as soon as you get to class."



"What did you desire to speak to me about ?"

Saint Francis Xavier was facing Lily, the two of them standing in the shade behind the school gym. The small female child was even more flighty than before, but she seemed less mournful.

"You said you wouldn't abandon me, right ?"

He gave her a bright smiling, one that warmed her core."Of course I would never abandon you. You're too cute to me to ever leave you behind."

"There's something I really ask to tell you. Xavier… I… I l-lo…"

She turned away from him with her hands over her typeface, overwhelmed with embarrassment. He stepped forward and lifted her chin, forcing her to look up at him."Relax, you can tell me anything."

He put his other arm against the wall behind her, sealing her in.

"Saint Francis Xavier, I l-love you,"she murmured with a flush of fear on her cute aspect.

Xavier worked to suppress a wicked grin. ‘ She's even well-fixed than I thought. I originally figured it would take at least two week for her to build this far. blaze, I probably won't even need to use any powers to shape her into the perfect minuscule slave.'

Faking bashful surprise, he looked away while pretending to laugh nervously."Wow, really ? No girl has ever told me that before, especially one as pretty as you."

That compliment sealed the deal.

"Yes, I really love you. You're the first person who's ever been skillful to me. When I was with you, I felt for the world-class time in my lifetime that I wasn't being a encumbrance to anyone."

"wellspring, to be honest, I love you too. I fell for you the moment I looked at you and saw those bright, beautiful eyes. You have such a indulgent and gentle soul. I want to pass the relaxation of my lifespan with you."

Lily wiped away tears of joy."Really ? Then we can be together ?"

"Of course, but we'll have to be measured. Dating is strictly forbidden here and we can't get caught. It will be a secret honey, sympathise ?"

In his psyche, Xavier was cackling at the look of happiness on her face. A secret dear ? Even to him it sounded ridiculous.

"Yes, I understand ! I'll hold back it secret !"

"Ok, but if we're going to be together, we need to set some rules. They'll avail protect us and make sure we can be together forever."

She nodded eagerly, as if not even hearing what he said.

"low gear prescript : You have do everything I tell you without question. We can't be in a human relationship if I don't have your concluded and come cartel. You do trust me, don't you ?"

"Of trend I trust you ! I'll do anything you ask me !"

He rubbed the top of her capitulum."I know you will, because you're such a estimable girl. The 2d pattern is that you can't talking to anyone unless I give you permission. Other people won't translate our special bond, so we can't let them get close. Do you understand ? If anyone were to find out about us, we wouldn't be allowed to be together. At this school, all we have is each other, nobody else."

She ate it up, willing to fit in to anything in takings for some scraps of warmness. He then got down on one genu, but never dropping below her eye spirit level. Reaching out, he placed his hands on her cheeks.

"The one-third principle is simple, we have to make out each other more anyone else possibly could. Nobody on this earth will ever love you as lots as I do, just like I know nobody could ever have it off me as much as you do, read ?"

She nodded and he took a here and now to wipe away more tears of joy. He then changed his tone, putting on the façade of despair."And the 4th rule is that if you break any of the former rules, you'll need to be disciplined. You have to follow the rules, no matter what, so if you break them, I'll be forced to punish you. I don't want to have to penalize you ; it would break my heart. Please, I beg you, don't power me to do it. Do you infer ?"

She again nodded, the slightest twitch of unease in her eyes at the mention of penalty, but her heart easily convinced. She had to never break the convention. She couldn't reserve herself to be so cruel as to build Xavier punish her.

"Good, then how about we consummate the relationship ?"

cushion flashed across her case."What ?"

"Well we know that we're going to get married someday, so we might as well make believe love now."

She looked around nervously."You mean… here ?"

"Well we can't do it in your room or mine, not with our roomie always around. We have to be canny about where we do it so that we're not discovered. Besides, wouldn't it just be so lovely ? To execute our bond outside, the invigorated air to our pelt ? We're doing what nature intended us to do, so doesn't it seem the most suit that our first gear time be out in nature instead of in some dark bedroom ? We could do it here in the poise shade or out in the twinkle and finger the passion of the sun on our knit bodies."

He could tell he had won her over, but she was still very hesitating. She was wringing her skirt, unable to depend at him."I… I don't cognise how to build dearest,"she mild softly.

Xavier smiled and again rubbed the top of her principal."Don't trouble, I know how it's supposed to be done. I'll show you the way ; just do whatever I tell you and don't resist anything. First thing's first, take off your wearing apparel and let me see that beautiful body of yours."

Trembling like a folio but desperate to keep Saint Francis Xavier happy, she unbuttoned her blouse and pulled off her skirt. He then took the adjacent dance step for her, sliding her panties down her smooth legs and unfastening her bra. While she was scrawny for her age, she was showing mark of development, with a small-scale patch of pubic pilus above her slit and humble B-cup chest. Her skin was like the shape of a ripe peach tree, porcelain white and as soft as bloom flower petal. She tried to conceal herself, not from Xavier, but from the world around them.

"You are so gorgeous,"he said as he kissed her hand.

The mite of his lips to her soft peel relaxed her and she allowed her muscles to untwist. Down on one genu, he traced his fingers around her bright pink areolas, making her shiver.

"Your nipples are very sensitive erogenous zona. Do you know what that means ? It means that they provide sexual pleasure when stimulated."

He then began to snog her breasts, taking time to ride her modest buds with his tongue. Lily leaned against the brick wall behind her, panting from the blissful sensation of such intimate striking. Whichever nipple he wasn't sucking on, he pinched with his fingers to urinate her whine. He came up and started kissing her, showing her how to move her rim and touching her tongue with his. With their tongue wrapped around each early, he placed his hand between her legs and rubbed her Virgin gate with his thumb. She wanted to labor his handwriting away, suddenly feeling scared as thing progressed, but she obeyed Saint Francis Xavier and allowed him to cod the tight lips. He inserted his thumb into her, making her whimper with the alien experience. He moved back and away inside her, loosening her up and making her whole body flare with a fever of arousal. It was when he started rubbing her clitoris that her representative really began to leak out.

"This is your clit. It's incredibly sensible, and if I touch it enough, it'll brand you have an orgasm, otherwise known as"cumming ”. Are you ready ?"

"Ready for what ?"

Instead of answering, Xavier slipped his power and in-between finger into her, struggling to fit them in so wet a slit. Lily released a stifled groan and Xavier's trend changed, now becoming rapid and unbiassed. He was jamming his finger deep inside her at phrenetic focal ratio while using his thumb to work her clit like the action mechanism push of a videogame controller. She leaned on him, gagging from the overwhelming sentience. With all of her willpower, she held onto Xavier's dog collar with her teeth, trying not to let her uncontrollable moaning escape. Saint Francis Xavier continued his assault on her puss, fingering her so hard and fasting that she raised one leg to try and lesson the extremum sense impression. He grabbed her early leg and lifted her off the footing, putting her entirely system of weights on his hand as he pumped his fingers in her like the firing pin of an uzi. Her eubstance was trembling from the power of his poke, her tiny ass jiggling with her inside second joint wet from her spilling wetness.

At finish, she gave the signifying moan that she had achieved her first orgasm. Waves of delight swept through her, filling her idea with pyrotechnic while every muscle simultaneously convulsed. She collapsed on his shoulder, panting like a marathon offset. He sat her down on the ground, leaning her against the brick wall. While he waited for her to overtake her breath, he licked his fingers clean.

"Your finger's breadth are so big,"she whined as he kissed her neck.

"Oh, you are in for a big surprise."

He then stood up and unbuckled his drawers, letting his cock jumping out like a jumping-off point. She stared at it with wide heart, having never seen an existent phallus in her life. To her it was terrifyingly declamatory. What was he going to do with it ?

"Now for the adjacent example, oral sex. This is my cock and I want you to fellate on it. Think of it as a big all-day sucker. Can you do that for me ?"She stared at it in dubiousness, unable to resolve."Put your hand on it and stroke it first, just to get used to it."

Her small handwriting trembling, she slowly reached up and wrapped her finger around his appendage. The tone of it was almost scary to her, both the unbelievable heat it seemed to open off and the pulsating muscles beneath the skin. She moved her hand back and Forth, using that touch to familiarize herself with it.

"Ok, now bring your fount up close to it."

Looking up him for verification, she leaned forward and he rubbed the head against her lips, smearing them with precum. It felt so hot to her, like it would actually burn her. He put it between her lips, letting her buss it.

"Open your mouth and take up in as a good deal as you can. Whatever you do, don't let your teeth touch it."

She opened her sassing wide and he slid it in, taking his fourth dimension to rub the head against her spit. She closed her lips around it and he slowly pushed it in until she started to gag.

"There you go. Doesn't it sense secure to have that in your mouth ? Now start moving your header back and forth. suck on it like a void, use your tongue and cheeks."

Desperate to obey, she began bobbing her head while using the subdued constituent of her mouthpiece to pleasure him. He sighed with a smile as she diligently worked, her trust and skill rising with each passing instant. He put his hand on her caput, breathing heavily from the efforts of the young woman.

"You're such a near girl. Now let's see just how deep we can get it in."

Holding the sides of her head, he pushed himself in to her pharynx. Immediately she tried to push him off her, feeling her gag inborn reflex firing up and trying to rout the mass.

"No, don't fight it. You're supposed to give-up the ghost on it. Just relax your pharynx and let it happen."

Tears were streaming down her face and saliva was pouring from her lower lip and making a peck on her breasts. He managed to bury himself in all the way, with his egg resting on her chin. Lily looked like she was about to take place out, wordlessly whining that she couldn't breath. He at last pulled out of her, letting her take a dire breath of air, then smeared his cock across her face and put it back in her mouth. Knowing that she couldn't disobey him, she powered through with the tears and saliva drying off her face.

"Ok, I think I'm about to cum. Open your mouth and stick your tongue out."

glad to accept it out of her throat, she opened across-the-board while he stroked himself, breaking the seal of his orgasm. The first injection of semen went across her face, shocking her, and the 2nd and third covered her tongue. The second she closed her mouth, she shuddered in repugnance and tried to spit it out, but Saint Francis Xavier stopped her.

"No, swallow it all. Do you know what is ? That's the liquid pattern of my love for you. Are you really going to just patter it out ?"

Her eyes watering, she gave in and forced it down her throat, feeling like she had just swallowed a spoonful of salty honey. He then wiped the seminal fluid off her font and held her hired hand out to her. Having developed an instinct for obedience, she started licking his helping hand clean like a cat, making for certain that every utmost sperm ended up in her mouth.

"You're doing perfect, just to be expected from the globe's best girlfriend. Now onto the master looker : intercourse."

"What's that ?"

Xavier motioned to his re-hardening manhood."I'm going to put this inside of you. What I did with my finger, that was just practice."

Fear filled her at the prognosis of such an act. That big affair was going to go inside her ? !"I can't do it, it's too big ! I'm sorry, but it just won't be able to fit."

Xavier turned away from her and sighed."I shouldn't be surprised. This kind of thing is for mature adults and you're just a little kid. I guess you and I can't be together after all. I'll just have to wait four or five years until you can deal it."

Lily scrambled to her metrical unit."No ! Please ! I can do it ! Please don't go !"

Xavier smiled."That's my girl. Ok, twist to the wall and flexure over with your legs spread. Put your hands on the wall.

getting into situation, she shivered as Xavier stood behind her and picked her up by her coxa, needing to do so due to the difference in their high. With one arm wrapped around her, he used his free hired hand to penetrate her. Lily whined as the powerful mass pushed through her lips and entered her body. It was so big compared to her that she thought it was going to rip her apart. Xavier didn't hesitate to rupture her virginal membrane, simply pushing himself until he was buried inside her up to the Qaeda. She was so tight around him, her tiny body struggling to suit his peter. Lily was pushing against the wall with bout running down her expression. She couldn't show Xavier any weakness. She had to prove she loved him.

Loving the feel of wearing yet another deflowered girl like a condom, Saint Francis Xavier chuckled to himself and pulled out, letting her Virgin blood drip off the shaft of his shaft. Then thrust back into her, making her yelp, and then just as quickly pulled out. He began pumping her with a becalm but building rhythm method, slamming his manhood against the entrance to her womb, pulling out, and then repeating. With every thrust, Lily gave a small cry of pain, but with the exit seconds, that annoyance became mixed with pleasure. Their spot was awkward and soon had to be reworked.

Xavier had Lily pressed against the wall like he was arresting her, holding her off the ground with one of her legs raised so that he had easy access. She could smell the howitzer in the wall, and her nipples were chaffing against the cold brick. Was this was love was supposed to feel like ? Did everyone do it this way ? Getting mounted from behind with their brass against a wall ? No, she couldn't let herself think like that. Saint Francis Xavier loved her, he told her so. Besides, he was the solitary one that loved her ; she had to remember that. She had no one but him.

Eventually the position further devolved, Xavier now holding Lily like a wheelbarrow, continuing to profane her pocket-size body with her trying to maintain herself off the terra firma. An increase in the roughness of Xavier's stab told her that he was cumming again, and proving her right, he suddenly stopped and she could feel spirt of hot sperm being emptied into her muliebrity. The Patrick Victor Martindale White syrup overflowed from her tiny pussy, running down her belly, between her small breast, and dripping off her mentum. Xavier lowered her to the reason, the untested char curled up and panting. He picked up her cast-off panties and used them to pass over off his deflating manhood.

"Can you feel that ? Can you finger how much love I just shot into you ?"She silently nodded, not trusting her voice."soundly, you and I are going to be spending a lot of clock time together. Your torso belongs to me now, got it ?"She nodded again."upright, and make sure you shave yourself down there before our next meet. hairsbreadth is a existent turnoff for me."



The Page were flipped with anger and impatience, but refused to give up the secrets capital of Montana was after. She was in the subroutine library, looking for any information she could get on the Antichrist. She couldn't find a lot ; every mentioning was about what would bechance with the Book of Revelation and told her nothing that she didn't already know from reading the Scripture : a magnetic guy would appear, a genius of political science and economics, who would use fake miracles and lies to twist people away from messiah. Then Jesus would show up up and the apocalypse would happen.

But null told her how to vex him herself, or how to at to the lowest degree fight him. What really concerned her was that he wasn't following the biblical divination. He claimed he witnessed the Nazarene's crucifixion and had been wandering the globe ever since. So why hadn't he made his move yet ? Why was he still pretending to just be a high school educatee ? Had he always had his current visual aspect ? Or could he change the way he looked so that he could ameliorate assume identities and position of power ? He had mentioned earlier that he was thinking about his time to come, that there was a completely world just waiting to be conquered. What was he really planning ?

She closed the book she had been reading and leaned back in her hot seat. ‘ This isn't getting me anywhere. If I'm going to find his weakness, then I'll necessitate to do some investigation.'



Father Hauser sat in his small office, deep in thought. The things capital of Montana and Thane had told him were very concerning. He had known Helena since she first came to rosewood University and regarded her as a very brave and gritty young char. She often came to him for aid when she did something bad, both in lookup of guidance and for helper escaping the Discipline Committee's wrath. But when she spoke to him in the church… that was the first time he had seen her truly frightened. Why would she say the entire school day was in danger and then just run off ?

He thought back to what she said, searching for clues. ‘ She said that there was going to be a war that would show the the true. Show… the truth… What truth ? What was she talking about ? If there were a war, why would everyone in the school be in danger ? Would it occur here ? If it did, then that would mean everyone in Roma is in peril. Thane said that there was something wickedness in the school as well, something unlike from the other showcase. Maybe… Helena is a victim of possession and what she saw was a incubus brought on by whatever is haunting her ? Thane told me to keep back a lookout for any unusual phenomena, maybe I should try looking at Helena…'



"Excuse me, are you Chadic ?"

The pudgy bookman, studying at a sunlit tabular array on the grassy campus, looked up."Yes, can I help you ?"

"My figure is capital of Montana, and I was hoping I could ask you something."

"Ok, shoot."

She sat down next to him at the child's play mesa, setting her volume bag beside her."You're Xavier's roomy, right ?"

"Uh… yeah."

"Is there anything you could recount me about him ? Anything weird you might throw noticed about him ?"

Tchad looked around in confusion."Why are you asking ? You do cognize that dating is forbidden in this schooltime, right ?"

Helena groaned in irritation."I'm not queer in that way. I met him the day he first came here and he seems like kind of a unearthly guy. I'm just wondering if it's something only I'm noticing or if he just seems quirky to everyone."

"He doesn't seem weird to me. He's quiet, doesn't public lecture to me lots, but he's always very polite."

"Does he possess any weird stuff and nonsense in your room ? Anything that might give a clue as to where he's from ?"

"Nope, or at to the lowest degree I haven't seen anything. He did make a duffle bag with him that he keeps under his bed, but I don't think there is anything weird in there."

‘ A duffel bag ? There may be some clues in there.'“ Ok, well I guess it was just a strange first of all opinion he gave me. I should get going. Thank you."

Hooking her arm around the strap of her book bag, she stood up but intentionally threw herself off balance and into a decline."Whoa !"

Swinging her arm, she"accidentally"struck Chad in the face with her Bible bag, breaking his nose and sending him to the ground, howling in pain.

‘ God Almighty, please forgive me for that. I'm only doing what I must.'“ Oh my god, Chad ! I'm so deplorable, are you all right ? !"He only gave a muffled cry, trying to stop the line of descent pouring to his nose."It's ok, I'll help get you to the infirmary."Taking advantage of his pain, she pulled him to his human foot while sneaking her hired hand into his scoop and taking his dorm way key. ‘ And please forgive me for that too.'



There was hushed murmur in the cafeteria as Thane made his way to the kitchen with an empty tray for dinner party. He was well-known in this school, more than just for his untidy appearance.

"Who is that guy ?"a sixteen-year-old miss asked her friend, the two of them watching from their table.

"That's horse parsley Thane, he's a senior. From what I've heard, priests will ask him for service from fourth dimension to time."

"Help ? Help for what ?"

"dispossession. Supposedly he's got some really sharp sixth sentience and is able to free citizenry from willpower faster than any other priest. I think he once said that he was going to get a priest and just do exorcisms as a specialist. He'll probably be recruited into the Vatican pretty soon."

Thane got in line in the kitchen, moving his tray down the metal slide. mortal got behind him. At that bit, his entire dead body froze and became suddenly drenched with a cold sweat. Around him, the pigment peeled off the bulwark, the food became stinky, the metal rusted, and everyone in the kitchen turned to systema skeletale and crumbled. The roof above his head was ripped away, revealing a hurricane of ardor overhead. Feeling a blaring heat on his back, he turned around. The schooling was gone, all of capital of Italy swept aside as if by a nuclear detonation. In its place was a literal mountain of underframe, with flaming streaming up through the eye sockets of the skulls and between the ivory. At the top of the mountain sat a anatomy on an obsidian toilet, surrounded by bare womanhood with collars on their neck opening, swooning at his base and clambering for his attention.

The name was xx feet in tiptop with a very muscular material body. In the literal blink of an eye, the figure disappeared and reappeared in front of Thane, their faces so close that he could see nada but the bloody flaming churning in his oculus. A colossal deal closed around his throat and a monstrous roar slammed into his myringa, making him nearly pass out in agony.

"Hey, are you ok ?"

Thane was shaken from the hallucination, finding Xavier standing in front of him. The hand that had been around his throat was instead on his berm. Everyone in the kitchen was staring at the two of them.

"Can you hear me ? Are you alright ?"

Thane nodded and Saint Francis Xavier stepped by. The aged stared at him as he walked away, picking up intellectual nourishment laid out by the cafeteria proletarian and setting it on his tray.

‘ What in God's name was that ?'

Saint Francis Xavier was thinking the same thing, while on his typeface, his lips had curled into an insidious smirk. ‘ Interesting, very interesting.'



capital of Montana looked down the hallway both ways for the umpteenth sentence, scared out of her brain. Completely ignoring the fact that girls were forbidden to go in the boy'dormitory and she was essentially breaking into a dormitory room after stealing a key from a student she assaulted, she was entering the Antichrist's sleeping room. She was indisputable he would be at dinner, but for all she knew, he could be lying in his bed, waiting for her. All of the dormitory rooms in this corridor were empty, but the clicking of the key seemed flash than it should have been. She opened the door and stepped inside, feeling her tenderness beating in her auricle. The elbow room was empty, prompting a abstruse sigh of relief.

‘ Ok, the low gear affair I have to do is estimate out which is his bed.'

There weren't any pictures or anything on the bedside tables and no posters on the walls. She crouched down beside the bed on the right wing, about to reach under and see if there was a duffel bag underneath. She stopped, suddenly realizing that it was in fact his bed. It smelled like him. For some reason, she found herself enjoying the odor.

touch her fondness flutter, she slapped herself."What the hell are you thinking ? !"

Reaching under the bed, she grabbed his duffle bag and pulled it out. Unzipping the bag, she opened it wide but found only spare part dress. She dug through them, having to be careful and do sure that anything she touched was put back in its true space. Her patience wore cut though, and she merely emptied the contents on the base. Moving aside the clothes, she found his notecase and passport, but found nix of importance inside. According to his ID, he was from New Sjaelland, but considering his age, she knew that to be a lie. Underneath a cast out coating, she found a small pic album, about the size of a pocketbook. She was scared to spread it, having a good idea of what was inside. They were probably pictorial matter of cleaning lady, either before or after he raped them, but they might also offer a clue as to his origins. She opened it up, feeling the knot in her stomach immediately unraveling.

The commencement word-painting was the Pyramids of El Giza, taken from what looked like the balcony of a hotel room. The next one was a selfie, with Xavier standing… no… it couldn't be… at the pinnacle of Everest ? ! He was looking at the tv camera, not wearing any winter cogwheel, completely unaffected by the cold. He was smiling. The third photo was very old, black and white-hot even, and it showed the Eifel towboat. The one-quarter looked like it was from an old Polaroid camera. It showed Xavier, sitting on the grass at Stonehenge, with a big St. Claude Bernard sitting next to him. Was that his dog ? Or had the possessor allowed him to take a flick with it ? He wasn't the one holding the television camera, and like at Mount Everest, he was smiling.

Helena slowly flipped through the photo album, keeping her eye on the clock but also taking her clip on every pictorial matter. There was no telling what he had been doing before the instauration of cameras, no kind of documentation of his actions, but could it be possible that he had always been like this ? Traveling from topographic point to spot like a tourist ? Had he really spent these last two thousand years like a college student backpacking around the Earth ? He was never with people in these impression, never in a group exposure, but there were plenty of pictures of him with dogs. She had seen Xavier grinning, such as the pretender one he wore when around people, and the sadistic smirk he had when he showed his true colours, like when he raped Sophie. These were different. He looked… felicitous. Was it potential for even the Antichrist to feel something so ingenuous as happiness without hurting somebody ? Was his visual aspect not his only man quality ?

These word-painting proved his age, some of them looking like they dated back to the nineteenth century. If she showed them to individual, she could convince them of what he was. She put his dress back in his bag, arranging everything the way they had been before, but kept the photo album with her. About to leave with it, she pulled her hand off the doorhandle as she felt her collar activate. It seemed that Xavier had predicted something like this and made principle regarding sure possessions. She finally had what she needed to break free of Saint Francis Xavier's control and keep Sophie and the repose of the school, but it was out of her orbit.

She looked at the diminished leather Christian Bible in her hired man. It was the sealskin that had stopped her from taking it, but for some reasonableness, a minuscule part of her felt glad that she couldn't. She had been so heroic for test copy of what he was, substantiation that she could use to reveal him and free herself, but this wasn't the kind of proof that she wanted. She wanted to use his evil against him, to reveal his offense to the existence so that he could be stopped and hopefully even destroyed. As much as she hated him and as much as she wanted him dead, it didn't feel right to use his one composition of innocence as a artillery. She wanted the smoking gun that would show the earthly concern that he was a monstrosity, not the one cherished possession that proved that even a monster like him was capable of joy.

She pulled his duffle bag back out from under his bed and returned to photo album. Xavier may have won this stave, but she would ascertain something she could use against him, something that would end his reign. With everything just as it had been since before she arrived, she made her escape from the hall. She kept the key with her, hoping she could use it again sometime.



That dark, Xavier came to her elbow room to have his way with Sophie again. This time, he had her on her articulatio genus, bent over with her wrist bounce to the headboard like before. He laughed as he raped her, thrusting into her mar pussy like a jackhammer. Every time he pushed in, his second joint would clap against her ass and make it jiggle. Sophie was crying nonstop, her anguish heightened when he would get through down and strangle her bounce knocker. Paralyzed in her bed like before, Helena could do nil but lookout, crying tears of her own. The secondment time around was no less amazing, the pain of watching her Charles Herbert Best friend being brutalized feel like an icicle going through her heart. She just had to hope that Xavier would again erase Sophie's memory board and mend her body.

‘ Just hang on, Sophie. I'll find a way to save you.'





Chapter 4



Lily whimpered with her grimace to the undercoat, feeling more humiliated than ever in her liveliness. She felt like she was doing something wrong, something severe and unwholesome. She was with Xavier behind the university gym, enjoying the privacy. Buzzing inside her were two gravid vibrators, one in her ass and one in her pussy, with Xavier stirring them to further step up the tidal wave of sensations sweeping through her. He was training her in anal play, having convinced her that it would be a great method of bringing her joy and forcible pleasure, as well as let them erupt down the physical and emotional roadblock between them.

In world, he was doing this to undermine whatever immunity she might sustain to his will. The more he humiliated her like this, the more accustomed she would be to following his guild. But this covert insult wasn't all that was in their relationship. Over the weekend, he had taken her off campus for a couple of day of the month, the first being lunch and walk around the green and the second being dinner and a movie. Never in her lifespan had Lily smiled so much and been so felicitous as when she clung to Xavier's arm, and her love for him only grew hard. This concoction of heart and ill-treatment was turning her into the perfect slave.

"So how does your ass feel ?"he asked while licking his lips.

"I-it f-feels… really… w-weird !"she whined.

"But you must enjoy it, don't you ? The tactile property the toys buzzing in your naughty percentage ? I bet it'll really finger in effect if I do this…"

He revealed another vibrator, about the sizing of a dime and worn on his finger with a small strap. He pressed it to her clit, making Lily's voice startle in loudness. The expression on her face, it was like she was melting. She couldn't take it anymore ; the three toys were too much. Covering her mouth with her hand, she cried out as she had orgasm after orgasm, cumming so hard that the toy in her pussy was pushed out with a splash of her liquid state arousal. Her diminished body heaving from her desperate panting, she shivered as she felt Xavier's glossa supplant the dildo in her ass. After all the time with the vibrators inside her, her Department of the Interior was incredibly sensible, but that didn't stop him from licking every nook. He moved back and Forth River between the two orifices, sending his tongue so mystifying inside her that should consume almost sworn that he was part snake.

"I can still smell the grievous bodily harm from how tough you scrubbed down here in the shower. You're such a unspoiled girl. I love going down on you, you have a delicious and beautiful body."

"Really ?"

"Oh line, you're the most beautiful girl in the full world."

He pulled away and got to his groundwork, proceeding to unbuckle his trouser and let his humanness faulting rid."shuffle sure you get it good and wet so that it will slide in easy."

Sitting up, Lily took his cock in her mouth as if it had become second nature. They hadn't been dating long, but Xavier had quickly taught her what her obligation was as his charwoman. Several times during their date, and every time they were able to meet up during the school day, he would have her sucking him off until she had mastered it. She had even learned how to deep-throat him without nearly throwing up or suffocating. Her point bobbed back and Forth River with the end of his dick rubbing against the back of her throat. He made sure to stroke her hair and give her a loving smile, as well as Tell her what a salutary girl she was and what a pure job she was doing.

After a few minutes, he had her stop and then sat down on the flat coat, motioning for her to get on. Knowing what he wanted, she crouched over his lap and spread her brass, letting him set her down on his stopcock. She yelped as she felt him enter her, his member being big than the dildo he had used on her.

"Can you feel it ? Our body are joined together, just as they should be."

"Yeah,"she murmured,"I can finger it."

With her vertebral column to him, Xavier had her put her feet on his stifle and started bucking his rosehip, thrusting up into her with C of experience. Lily had to work to preserve her voice contained, feeling her soundbox wanting to slash from the genius of Xavier's manhood slamming into her back door. She often wished he could be more merciful with how toilsome he fucked her, especially since this was her start time being sodomized, but as long as he loved her and as long as she got to cum, she could reserve in her ill. Besides, she was beginning to delight it.

"Your asshole feels so courteous around my cock, it's so warm and lenient. Do you feel well ?"

"Yes ! It feels good !"

"Then I'll make you find even better."

He wrapped one arm around her pegleg and lifted them, curling her up with her genu to his chest of drawers. While continuing to commit his pecker deep into her cocksucker, he used his other deal to finger her dripping pussy. It took less than a mo for them to both cum, Lily soaking Xavier's finger's breadth and Xavier sending spurt after jet of come into her asshole.

"Can you feel it ? find how much dear I pumped into you ?"

"I can feel it, it's so hot inside me,"she whimpered.

Xavier had engraved this into her mind : seed equaled affection. He had brainwashed her into thinking that it was the strong-arm manifestation of his love for her. She would puzzle out it off the level if any pearl were to hang and would beg him to pour out it into her.

"Ok, fourth dimension to give suck it clean."

"B-but it was in my…"

"I still have more than semen, don't you want to pledge it up ? Besides, you have to clean me off."

She wordlessly obeyed, getting off his lap and turning around. She winced at the gustatory modality but did as she was told and began sucking on his rooster. As she stirred his manhood around in her sass, she suddenly shuddered. Xavier had just inserted a minuscule butt plug in her rearward end.

"There. That way it won't escape out and go to waste. I want you to keep it inside you until we can conform to up tomorrow. Do not aim it out, got it ?"

She gave a sad nod and crawled over to her pile of clothes. Xavier quickly stopped her and kissed her on the cheek."You're beautiful, you know that ? You're as beautiful as you are sweet."

She smiled, her uneasiness removed.



Thane crouched down in the hallway, duct-taping a battery to the wall. He had done this well over a C clock time already, taking advantage of his free full stop to try and shed some light on what was going on. He had to be tranquillize when he moved around like this, as while the schoolhouse did consecrate him some allowance account, there were classes going on all around him. Making surely he couldn't be seen through the small window in the threshold of the schoolroom at his position, he reached into his pocket and pulled out a compass. The needle jiggled from the effort, but did not birl, something that would normally occur in an area of paranormal body process. What was going on ? He was sure there was something evil in these manor hall, but if the compass wasn't showing any mark, then this really was something different.

He put the compass back in his pocket and replaced it with a articulation recorder.

"Elementary schooltime Building, Wing 5. April 17th, 2015.
Our Father in Heaven,
hallowed be your name,
your kingdom come,
your will be done,
on earth as in heaven.
give us today our day-after-day bread.
Forgive us our Sin
as we forgive those who sin against us.
Save us from the time of trial
and deliver us from evil.
For the kingdom, the power, and the glory are yours
now and for ever. Amen."

He stopped the recorder and moved to the end of the all. With a tv camera in hand, he snapped a picture of the empty corridor.



Likewise, Father of the Church Hauser was doing research as well. Hearing Thane's actor's line had made him funny about something. He had told the pupil about the three suicides, but now he couldn't supporter but marvel if maybe there was a connection between them and whatever it was that Thane was sensing. He was in his function, looking over every newspaper publisher and tabloid he could get his hands on. The three self-annihilation had made the news with their strange and sick behavior, but the information he was capable to harvest was limited. He knew their names and what school they went to, but cypher personal. There was plenty of speculation of grade ; dissimilar reference claiming that they had been on drugs, that it was a fiendish ritual, or that they had done it simply to get their XV bit of celebrity.

He had considered oral presentation to the parents of the victim, but that wouldn't oeuvre. He was a priest, not a detective. He wasn't even the priest from their Christian church. They had no cause to reply his questions and were probably sick of the inquirers, not to mention that as a Catholic priest, he had to stay fresh a length from the kinsperson since the boys had committed the sin of suicide.

wait, there was something. On one of the tabloids, he saw that the boys had been admitted to and released from a hospital that very day. Why did they all go to the hospital ? Did it let something to do with their death ?



Helena watched Xavier sustain his way with the crying Sophie, as he had done meter and meter again. She had lost count of how many times she had been forced to determine. She had no idea how many minute he had spent raping her best friend in front of her. These foresighted, unsatisfied Night were sapping her strength, making it unmanageable to quell awake during form. When she did sleep, she had nightmares of Xavier. He would be in her bed, fondling her, whispering in her ear. Some dark, he wouldn't show up, and she would lie awake, waiting for him out of apprehensiveness. She wasn't sure enough why he'd skip, thinking that maybe he was doing it just to slew with her. The other possibility was that he had gotten his fill of the chassis of a adult female, finding some other poor girl to use.

60 minutes later, he stood up, panting with semen dribbling out of Sophie's purulent and dickhead. He then turned to Helena, still paralyzed. A belittled smile, he strode over to her, making her ticker race with each tone he took. What was he going to do to her ? Was she following ?

He sat down on the bed, licking his mouth while he stroked her hair."What do you call back ? By now, you must deliver developed a taste sensation for it."He reached under the covers and Helena struggled against her paralysis, feeling his fingers reach her moist panties."My, my, you're so wet. Are you aware of how horny you are ? What goes through your thinker while I violate Sophie ? Is it the fact that I'm brutalizing her that turns you on ? Do you enjoy seeing her suffer ? Do her screams of pain and humiliation make you shiver ? Or do you feel left out ? Do you envy her for being able-bodied to feel the manhood of her master thrusting recondite into her slit ?"

With her lips stuck together, she could only gift a muffled rejection.

"Ah, I love that wrathful fire in your centre. Let's put it to the test, shall we ?"

With a picture of his hand, he drew a notecard from nonentity, holding it between his fingers. He slipped it under her pillow."time for things to start moving between you and I. Goodnight."

He then kissed her on the forehead and disappeared.



Helena slowly stirred to the speech sound of her alarm clock. The upshot of last night were blurred to her. She remembered Xavier brutalizing Sophie… then coming over to her. Wait, the notecard ! About to front for it under her pillow, she realized it was clutched tightly in her bridge player, the way she would prehend her palm in prayer. Making sure Sophie didn't see it, she faced the wall and read the card.

IF YOU WANT TO PROTECT SOPHIE FROM ME TONIGHT, WAIT FOR HER TO leave THE ROOM AND SAY THE WORDS"PUNISH ME ”. YOUR task FOR THE DAY WILL BEGIN.

capital of Montana's fondness dropped into her abdomen. Oh God, what in the Earth was he going to accept her do ? !

"Helena, aren't you getting up ?"Sophie asked as she got dressed.

She took a late intimation."I really just require to lie in bed for a small while longer. Go on to breakfast without me, I'll be there in ten minutes."

"Ok, but please don't crepuscule back to sleep. You don't want to pretermit breakfast AND be late for class."

"I'll be fine, just go on ahead."

Sophie left and Helena immediately sat up in bed. She looked over the visiting card again, studying every millimeter. There was no ok photographic print she could find oneself, no other operating instructions or elucidation. If she said the Holy Writ"punish me ”, then she would be given some kind of job for the day, and in central, Sophie would be free from torment for that night. But could she conceive Xavier ? Would he hold on his word ? Would this labor really only last for a day or would this be the entry he claimed he would win from her ? She knew… she had to do it. What kind of friend would she be if she allowed that colossus to throw his way with Sophie when she had the chance to protect her ? And if Jesus was volition to give his biography for the sins of all mankind, she could put up with Xavier's ruthlessness for the sake of her Friend's safety.

She stood up out of bed and took a mysterious breath."Maker, give me strength."She looked down at the poster."penalise me."

Her neckband immediately activated, turning into a ring of luminosity around her neck opening. From the ring stretched total darkness palm, wrapping around her torso over and over again in coordination compound greyback. Known as the tortoise shell formation, they formed a net across her body like a spider web. She didn't spirit anything from the typewriter ribbon ; they were fairly escaped. It was awkward and embarrassing, sure, but not painful or even very unpleasant. About to reckon that she had lucked out, she gagged as the decoration merged with her pelt, turning into tattoos. It wasn't the sensation of them merging with her that had nearly brought her to her knees, but what happened on those seam. inconspicuous forget me drug bound her, following the radiation pattern of the course etched into her skin. They were so soaked, digging into her skin and making it tough to lease broad breaths. Her breasts were being squeezed as if with zip necktie, while one segment of the roofy went between her pegleg. Not only was had it settled in her ass like a thong, but there was a knot right against her clitoris.

She fell to her knee, blushing from the star of the bond paper rubbing against her most raw blot. No matter how she moved, she felt the rope slide between her wooden leg and around her breasts. She moved her hands across her body, feeling real invisible roofy tied around her, as if she could cut them off and them use them for lot climbing. Or was it the strain on her skin making her smell like they were real ? What was the period of this ? To make her feeling helpless ? To inflict pain ? It was certainly working. She had heard that people liked to be tied up like this for sexual pleasure, but she just failed to grasp how anyone could enjoy it. Though with the way the forget me drug were touching her, she could definitely feel stimulation…

She looked down at the calling card. The intelligence had changed.

have A NICE DAY AT schoolhouse

That son of a bitch.



"good morning, Helena. Oh… wow, are you ok ?"

Helena had arrived at the usual slur where she ate with her friends, and they immediately noticed how sluice her face was. It had taken a lot of bravery to pull up stakes her room. Her clothes didn't show the invisible forget me drug on her body, confirming for her that it was really the black line of products on her skin that were binding her. Getting dressed had been difficult and going down the stairs had been even worse. The ropes weren't chafing or leaving any marks. It was more like she was feeling intangible pressure and her nerve endings were being tricked into thinking they were really there.

"Y-yeah, I'm fine. Don't worry."

She sat down at the board, trying not to wince from the impression of the rope grinding against her puss. The longer she was bound, the more sensitive she was becoming.

"Hey, look over there. It's Thane. I heard he's been missing a lot of classes."

Helena looked to where her friend was pointing, spotting the tangle student."So what ?"

"If Thane is missing class, it means he's meddling, and considering the oeuvre he does with the priests, it's authoritative. He's an exorcist after all. hearsay say he's been snooping around the school, looking for some variety of demon or something."

Helena stared at him with all-encompassing heart. ‘ Wait, he's looking for a fiend ? Is it possible that he knows Xavier is here ? Maybe he can help me !'



Father of the Church Hauser sat in the waiting area by the entry to the sheet building. He had managed to convince the head of the cartridge to see him, and hopefully he could get Thomas More selective information on the self-destruction. Behind her desk, a receptionist got a yell through her intercom.

"Father, he'll see you know."

He nodded in gratitude and walked over to the fill up office door, which had a window of foggy spyglass with the boss's gens and claim. He stepped into the office, the walls lined with framed headline from the magazine. Working at his estimator was the honcho, an overweight balding man.

He stood up and shook Hauser's hand."Ah, Father Hauser, what can I do for you ?"

"Thank you for meeting with me, Mr. flair. I'm here because I wanted to ask you about the story you posted last week, about the three boy who killed themselves."

"male parent, I'm sure you know I can't give up my seed, even to a man of the church."

Hauser sighed."Well then I was hoping you could tell me any other pieces of data you might have. I'm worried that there may be something going on with these deaths."

"Oh please, you think you're the only one ? We weren't the first base paper to say they were doing ogre adoration. Every media wall socket is being hounded by zealots."

"Well what I'm curious about is the fact that they were coming from a hospital. Can you at least tell me what you know about that ?"

"fountainhead from what we heard, they got assaulted that morning."

"Wait, do you bang by who ?"

"Now I certainly can't just give you that information. I do have—"

"I hereby absolve you of all your sins."

"There we go. Supposedly it was a girl from rosewood University."



"Come on, O'Connor ! Try to keep up !"

Regardless of the coach's barking, capital of Montana struggled to go on up with the former girls. It was gym category and she was swimming in the university consortium. With the invisible ropes binding her, any kind of physical activity was a nightmare. She never realized how a great deal she moved her body when swim, and every time she gasped for air, she felt her breath being halved from the tautness of the control. Then there was the humiliation she was feeling. Everything she had seen and experienced so far today told her that the ropes were invisible, but when wearing nil but a schoolhouse bathing costume, she felt like the wholly world could see her in this shameful straightjacket. Then there were the lines, the black lines on her skin, as widely as her digit and elucidate as day. Luckily, bathing suit at a Catholic school were as small they could be. They were more like wetsuits but with short sleeves and trouser legs and covering her throat like a turtleneck, so her catch and the binds around her shoulders were covered.

The class was supposed to do five laps, but by the time all the early fille were done, she had only accomplished two. She was more fag than any of them, feeling the forget me drug sap her strength. The sensation was dissimilar in the water. They felt almost like digit brushing up against her bod, like a full-body massage. It wasn't nearly as blissful as a actual massage, but the stimulation was just as potent. The density around her white meat like they were being fondled, the detrition of the R-2 between her legs, and the grip on her shoulder joint and stomach left her a blushing wreck, clinging to the edge of the pond with the early little girl and gasping for air. The water was poise but she felt so tinker's dam hot. Her classmates all looked back at her and whispered amongst themselves, wondering what was legal injury with her.

No surprisal, the bus stormed over."O'Connor, what's the issue with you ? Normally you would have been the first-class honours degree to earn the fifth lap, but now you look like a half-dead dog out there."

"Sorry, Ms. Edwards. I'm look sick today."

"Well you can't do much if you're sick. Go hit the shower bath and wait for course to end."

Nodding in gratitude, Helena slowly climbed out of the pool and made her way to the locker room. This was actually the best possibleness for her. She had been forced to deepen into her swimming costume before socio-economic class in the seclusion of the toilet, wearing it under her uniform so that no one would see the tattoos. Now, she could shower and get dressed without anyone seeing her. She stepped into the showers and turned the hot water on, panting as she removed her swimsuit. She looked at the tattoos, feeling them pressing down on her. They looked so strange on her, but also seemed to compliment her figure. Now that she thought about it, the look was kind of sang-froid. Perverted, sure, but ignoring that, the bible forbiddance tattoos, the pain of getting them, and the monetary value, this wouldn't be half bad to get permanently. She'd just need a less sinful version.

She released a gasp of euphoria as she stepped under the shower, feeling the hot water rinse away the chill and the chlorine of the pool and ease her heftiness. She ran her hands across her naked body, rubbing the tattoos to try and alleviate the tension of her binds. Why did this tactile property so good ? She leaned against the wall, letting the water pour down her unclothed flesh while she massaged herself. Her eyes bolted unresolved when she realized what she was doing, discovering that she had started squeezing her breasts and was sliding her fingers between her legs. She held her weapons system out to her slope and shook her brain like a dog, trying to unloose herself of these wicked sensations.

About to turn off the shower, she stopped and nearly fell to her knees. Her breathing became haggard and she clutched herself. The James Bond, they were… changing ! The tattoos rearranged themselves on her body taking a new pattern. Originally, amongst the different knots and webs on her pectus and belly, she had had a rope going between her legs like a G-string, tucked into her ass with a knot against her clitoris, as well as two choking Julian Bond around her breasts, as if they each had shoe collar of their own. Now, she had two spider web on her breast, the staged binds converging on what felt like two tintinnabulation, pressing down on her areolas with her mamilla poking through, making them swell and endure erect. The roofy between her branch had now become two, but they were wrapped around her thighs like a harness. They had settled right in the seam, between the sides of her pussy and her inner second joint, squeezing the plump back talk and making them ruck as if expecting a kiss.

Helena could barely ride out on her feet. With how sensitive the first pattern had made her consistency, the changing on the trammel had almost invoked an climax, the first orgasm she had ever had. Catching her breathing space, she at last turned off the shower bath and staggered out. She sat down on one of the benches amongst the locker, nearly yelping as the bonds tightened from the movements.

‘ Oh God, how much longer am I going to have to suffer through this ?'

Once her instant had slowed, she dried herself off and changed back into her uniform. Just as she finished buttoning the top of her blouse, the door to the locker room swung open and her schoolmate strolled in. How foresightful had she been in the shower ? As she got her things together, her classmates all cleaned themselves off and came to the lockers to get dressed.

"Hey, also-ran !"

Helena rolled her heart at the sound of the pipe voice. It belonged to someone she hated more than anyone else in the world, mo only to Xavier : Daphne Brooke, one of the bitchy girls in the school, and before the Antichrist's arrival, she had been capital of Montana's nemesis. Their mutual hatred was apprehensible : Helena was an highly strung tyke of God with a saturated heart and soul ( minus her violent peevishness and phylogenetic relation for vehemence against heathens ), and Daphne was a ungodly delinquent with a hobby of"convincing"non-Christian priest in training to bust their vows of sexual abstention. In rescript to get her off drugs and put the fear of God in her, her parents had dumped her at Rosewood University. From day one, the two adult female had been at each other's throats, always snitching on each other and badmouthing each other.

"What do you require, harlot ?"

Helena's convention was to never affirm and she wasn't going to break it because of Daphne. The worst she would ever prognosticate her was a whore, and even then it was only because it was a Word used in the bible.

"I'm just enjoying the quite a little of the high and mightily"apotheosis Helena"falling behind everyone else. Let me approximate, you're still sick from throwing up this dawn ? Do you know who the father is ?"

All the former girlfriend watched and whispered amongst themselves, while capital of Montana, having yet to even face Daphne, gave an annoyed sigh.

"I'm not significant, but knowing you, I'd be surprised if you could say the Saame. And even if I was, I would go through with childbirth and give that baby a wonderful life, unlike you with your trusty coating hanger and pet dumpster."

The former pupil all covered their mouth and silently laughed in impact from the brutality of capital of Montana's response.

daphne just gave a smug leer, tying her wiry pitch blackness hair back into pigtails."As if any man would be willing to put up with a girl who's on her period 24/7."

"Yeah, well, I at least I still get mine."

shutting her storage locker, Helena strode past tense daphne, sot on prideful triumph for getting the close word and making it stark. Even the inconspicuous binds couldn't dampen her spirits after that righteous beating.



Xavier glared at Lily, cowering in shame before him.

"You took it out, didn't you ?"

"I'm sorry, I couldn't quietus with it inside me. But I have it in me now !"

"That's not the period ! I trusted you with this task and you betrayed me ! How am I supposed to think in you ?"

Lily kneeled down in front end of him, her optic filled with terror."You can trust me ! delight ! I'm sorry ! Please don't leave me !"

Saint Francis Xavier put his hand on her headspring."I'm not going to will you, but you clearly don't respect the rules and understand how of import they are. You have to be punished. I don't want to, but you're forcing me to do this."

"What do I have to do ?"

"Follow me."

With Lily behind him, Xavier entered the gymnasium and made his way to the memory room. There weren't any division going on, and while the teacher was in his office, Saint Francis Xavier was using his powers to put him in a brief comatoseness. While he walked, it took all of Saint Francis Xavier's willpower to keep from grinning. It was prison term to see just how commit this pudding head girl was. Would she leave him after this, or would her submissiveness only become more deeply rooted in her soul ? Plus it would let him quench his thirst for malice.

He brought her into the dark stowage and closed the doorway behind them."Ok, postulate off your clothes."

Lily did as she was told and Xavier had her stand under a low-hanging pipe. Taking her blouse, he looped it over the organ pipe and then tied the sleeves around her wrist joint, keeping her bound like shackles with her arms raised. Standing nude while tied up, Lily shivered with overplus and concern. This was different from all her other moments with Saint Francis Xavier, there would be no fun or pleasure. She had broken the rules and now she had to be punished. He was standing behind her, what was he doing ?

The whiplash of a smash across her depleted back made her cry out in pain unpaired by anything in her life. She could sense a red welt forming on her vanilla skin and she tried to hold back her tears.

"What are you doing ? !"

"I'm punishing you. You broke the convention and brought this on yourself."

He whipped her again, this time on her thighs. She screamed and pulled at the blouse binding her radiocarpal joint. A third rap was delivered, landing across her rear end.

"I'm sorry ! Please stop !"she sobbed.

"I thought you loved me,"he scolded while whipping her across the back three times.

"I do ! I love you !"

He whipped her several more clock time, crisscrossing her back and ass with long bruise. He then had her turn around and face him, her heart puffy and red from crying. But when she saw him, her eye widened. He was crying as well, crocodile binge of course of instruction, but she didn't know that.

‘ He's suffering too, this probably hurts him Thomas More than it does me ! He really does have sex me !'

A work stoppage to her flavourless belly robbed her of the grinning that was about to appear.

"Every choice has aftermath, this is how the globe works. I gave you love and the hope of a beautiful hereafter, but apparently that didn't mean anything to you."His belt ammunition slashed her privileged second joint, just inches from her kitty, then twice more."I thought you were a good girl. That was what made me enjoy you."She continued to cry, trying to be given back to lesson the pain in the neck when he whipped her between the legs."Bad lady friend get punished because they hurt the masses that care about them. Are you a bad girl ? safe girl do whatever they're told and fall out the rules. Are you a good female child ?"

Lily's shriek reached new heights of book once he started whipping her breast. Her nipples stung as if wasps had stung them and the face felt like they were on fire.

"I'll never break the convention again ! I'm a good girl ! I'm a good female child ! I'll never disobey you again !"

"good, then it seems the punishment did what it was supposed to."

Xavier untied her and she collapsed to the frigid concrete base, her body lined with bruises. She looked up at him, her head shaking slightly as if she were drunk.

"I'm sorry I made you punish me. Can you forgive me ?"

He got down and kissed her."Yes, I forgive you."

Lily then lied back and spread her pegleg."Please devote me your love, put it in all my holes."

Xavier grinned and took out his cock, not hesitating to penetrate her tiny pussy and mount her like an animal.

‘ It's just so easy !'



Helena walked down the hallway in between socio-economic class periods. She was exhausted, unable to ever get well-heeled with the unseeable binds stimulating her flesh every mo. She was counting down the proceedings until the end of the day, wondering when this curse would finally be lifted. Her panties were soaked, the friction of the rophy between her wooden leg made her vagina flavor like a runny nose. Looking through the crowds of students, she came to a sudden full point and felt her nerve drop cloth. Walking towards her was Saint Francis Xavier, that usual smirk on his face, like he had the whole earthly concern in the laurel wreath of his handwriting. In his comportment, she could depone that her binds tightened, leaving her gasping for breath. He passed by her, and in that fraction of a irregular, their eyes met. His gaze was piercing, inhuman, peering into her soul. With a lazy swish of his manus, he reached around to her lower vertebral column. His fingers passed through her blouse as if it was a hologram and he pulled up on one of the ropes and let it snap back. She shuddered, feeling like he might as well birth just sodomized her in front of everyone. The hallway was full phase of the moon of people, but no one had seen the movement. He walked away, leaving her to stand there with mass passing by like spawning salmon.

"Ah, Helena, there you are."

She spun around, finding Father Hauser behind her. He immediately noticed the frantic look on her pretty face."Are you all right, dear ?"

"Y-yes, I'm fine."

"Good, then I was hoping we could have little talk."

"I'm sorry, Father, but I'll be late for class."

"I'll enjoin your instructor that I held you back, you won't get into any trouble."

He then grasped her wrist and led her into an empty hallway. This was strange ; he was never this forceful before. He was being civilized and gentle, but he had never laid a paw on a scholarly person like this. Away from prying ear, he turned to her, a cautious feeling on his face."On the 10th, did you get into a engagement with three son in the city ?"

The image of the deadened boy flashed across her mind, his body hanging from a noose with his organs spilled out.

"What ? Why do you ask ?"

"I'll take that as a yes. capital of Montana, did they do anything to you ? Something that you might have thought silly or just shrugged off ? Did they say anything that you didn't understand ? What were they doing when you found them ?"

"They were just spraying some graffiti on the wall of a building ! No, they didn't do anything ! I saw them, I punished them for their sins, and then I left ! Please tell me why you're asking me this."

"I'll tell you if you tell me more about that dream you had. You said that there would be a war that would show the true statement. What did you mean ?"

capital of Montana bit her lip, knowing her collar would activate if she used the wrong words."I saw a valley where the scrap would take place. But it would all get in the school."

"And what is the Truth that will be shown ?"

"I don't know. I wish I could recite you, but I can't. I really wish I could, but I just can't.

Hauser's brow furrowed."One more than thing. What made you think God sent you this dream ?"

She looked up at him, hoping he would understand what she was trying to separate him."Because we need His protective covering. I'm sorry, Father. I really need to go."

She turned around and ran off, leaving Hauser to ponder over what she had told him. He was now sealed from that heroic look in her eye that she was holding something back, probably even lying. She repeatedly told him that while she wished she could tell him more, she was unable. What if it wasn't because of a lack of entropy on her part ? Maybe someone was keeping her tranquility. The constabulary ? The school ? Or maybe something evil had had actually latched itself onto her and was trying to break off her from spilling its closed book. It was clock time to consult someone on this matter, should the regretful be true.



The day at finis came to an end, and once capital of Montana went to bed, she felt the invisible bonds disappear. The black transmission line on her skin vanished, and last, she could breathe and debase fully. If Saint Francis Xavier kept his word, then he would not come into their room and Sophie would be safe tonight. She still had the card with her. She'd have to see if the deal would continue on the following day. If it did, what would happen ? Would it be the rophy again ? Or would it be something else ? It didn't matter ; she had won this round of golf. Her pride remained inviolate. She and Sophie said their evening prayers and went to bed, and finally, Helena got a good night's sleep.





Chapter 5



The red-haired lass took a deep breath, holding the posting in her bridge player. She was alone in her chamber, just like before.
"Punish me."
Nothing happened to her body, no laurel wreath or circle sprouting from her collar. However, the textbook on the plug-in changed.
GO SKINNY-DIPPING IN THE POOL TONIGHT AT MIDNIGHT. ALL THE room access WILL BE UNLOCKED.
She stared at the card, waiting for some horrible point to issue. Really ? That was it ? She just had to go skinny-dipping in the pool ? blaze, that was barely even a trial. That was more like a summer summer camp dare. for sure, it would be awful if she got caught and being up so late on a school night wasn't very appealing, but screw that. This would be well-to-do ! It seemed she had finally caught a break.



For once in what felt like ages, school seemed to pass by without apprehensiveness or worry. sure enough, Xavier was using Sophie as a surety against her, but all she had to do was just go swim naked in the school pool. As long as she did that, Sophie would be fine, and hopefully, Xavier wouldn't do anything to plenty with her. That certainty was a huge weight off her shoulder joint. As the day wore on, she found herself imagining the night to come more and more and even thinking that maybe, just maybe, it would be a lilliputian fun.



Helena thought it would be hard to keep from falling asleep, but instead she was incredibly uneasy. She hated the idea of breaking the rules and getting caught, but she was actually form of wind up. At quarter to 12:00 with Sophie out like a log, Helena put on some spare apparel and snuck out of her dorm room. Strange, the close time she had done something like this was when she went to the church and Saint Francis Xavier revealed himself as the Antichrist. She made her way across campus, being as tranquil as possible and avoiding any foretoken of staff or students awake like her.

She reached the gym, and as the carte du jour had promised, all the doors were unlocked. She entered the poolroom and smiled. The slope of the pocket billiards were lined with Christ Within that she had never noticed before, creating shifting hues that painted the dark ceiling while the air itself was operose with Night's shadow. It was beautiful, stunningly even. The atomic number 17 puddle that she had swam in hundred of clock time before now looked like a glimmering leap from the Garden of Eden, or some crystal clear oasis abstruse beneath the earth.

Standing at the border, she slowly took off her clothes. She felt incredibly nervous, ineffective to end imagining the bleachers being lined with witness. It took a dozen looks around the way for her to gain the trust to slip out of her bra and panties. Completely naked and shivering in anticipation, she looked to the clock up on the wall. Both helping hand struck 12 and her collar activated, telling her that the time had come. Taking a deep breath, she took a tone back and then jumped. She hit the water in a arrant dive, sliding in like a dagger. The spirit of the weewee against her raw body shocked her like a bolt of lightning and she writhed beneath the aerofoil, overcome with this new, blissful sensation.

Surfacing, she gasped for air and clutched her naked form. After all the time she had spent in this pool, the H2O had never felt so good. The freshening frisson shocked her system like Mentha piperita, and unlike a bath, she was able to debase and be active. She began swimming to the other end of the pool, relishing the sentience of the sang-froid water kissing her boob, tickling her stomach and back, and licking between her ramification like a paintbrush. She moved at her own gait, her speed decided only by how riotous she wanted the water system to roll over her skin.

Reaching the shallow end, she rested her chin on the bound of the railing below the surface and let her body float up. Her eyes bolted open as she heard mortal enter the water system nearby. Covering herself, she looked back to see Xavier, settling in the pool like it was a hot tub. Like her, he was naked, and she was almost tempted to appear down.

"What are you doing here ? !"she hissed.

"I wanted to join you. You were having so much fun."

She blushed and looked away, embarrassed from the joy she had felt just a mo ago. She readjusted her arm across her breasts and Xavier sighed.

"love, we're a little past that. Relax ; I know what you look like. Besides, I'm in the same boat as you are."

She refused to meet his gaze."Stop that. I'm not an flasher like you. I'm aught like you."

Xavier moved over to her and she screwed her eyes shut, afraid of how he was going to plague her. She could feel the movements in the water, reaching for her track breasts. But instead, he gently grasped her hand.

"Do you think masses cover themselves because they really believe that nudeness is sinful, or because they are afraid of the world not accepting their avowedly self ? Be proud of who you are. You don't have to hide your beauty, especially from me. I'll accept you for everything you are."

The way he spoke, that gentle and soothing way, it would ingest made her heart waver if coming from anyone but him, though that wasn't to say Helena didn't feel something when he spoke to her. He gently pulled on her arms, and as if forget why she had held them there in the kickoff place, she dropped them and let herself be exposed, under the water at to the lowest degree. Saint Francis Xavier moved past her to the wall, then pushed off and began swimming across the pool in the backstroke. Helena kept her oculus shut, not wanting to find out whether or not"it"would float.

"Come on, just standing there naked doesn't count as skinny-dipping. You're allowed to bask yourself, just like you were a minute ago."

"Why are you doing this ? Why ca-ca me do this thing ?"

Having reached the other end of the pool, Xavier turned back to her."Sorry ! I can't hear you from all the way over there !"

murmuration scourge, capital of Montana swam over, feeling like she might as well have been crawling on all quaternion. She reached the end and growled,"So why ?"

"So that you'll have a picayune fun for once. intercept taking everything so damn seriously and exist on the raving mad side."

"Oh, so that roach affair was fun ? And I shouldn't take the assault of my friend seriously ?"

Xavier sighed and began swimming back to the shallow end, this time with capital of Montana following. Only once they both touched the wall did he serve."Sophie doesn't seem very upset. Hell, she hasn't even had her first buss yet, let alone misplace her virginity. Admit it, being bound was the most thrilling experience you've had in a patch, even more than when you beat up punks. You felt animated when you were tied up. You sensed everything like never before as if you had just rediscovered your own trunk. The exciting possibility of getting caught, the erotic feel of the ropes clutching your physical structure like hands, you were gamy as a kite on endorphins. And this whole day, you were looking forward to coming here. You didn't care about breaking the rules. If anything, it made this more exciting for you. You're having fun, delight it."

Helena lowered her headland below the water and blew bubbles in frustration and superfluity.

Xavier looked over to the clock."Tell you what, swimming with me for twenty minutes and then you can go."

"Fine."

For the next twenty minutes, she tried to push Xavier out of her idea and simply enjoyed the kitty. She did retard laps and lazily floated on her back, her exposed breasts pointed at the ceiling. He mostly left her alone, swimming off on his own. It felt so strange to her, to be swimming au naturel with a man, the Antichrist of all people. It was like this puddle really was from the Garden of Eden.

‘ No ! No ! Don't make that equivalence ! He's iniquity ! He's a fiend'

"Helena, watch this."

She followed his vox, spotting him on the diving board like the statue of David. She yelped and looked away, afraid of seeing him so boldly exhibit. But a part of her wanted to see. Even after all the sentence he had been with Sophie, capital of Montana had never gotten a facial expression at him nude. It had always been too grim. He was very masculine, almost lover. It filled her stomach with butterflies for a reason she didn't understand.

"I'm serious. Watch this."

He did a few nimble jumps on the board to work up up free energy and then leapt off. In midair, he spun around and curled his body into a flip, simultaneously. Even Helena couldn't hide her surprisal at the deal of the stunt. She had seen Olympic divers perform similar maneuvers from the high school jump, but never off the diving board just a meter above the piss. To suppose he could do it with so little room and time.

He surfaced, sputtering but with a smile."I learned to do that from a monk when I swam in the River Ganges. Do you want to try ?"

Narrowly stopping herself, she turned up her olfactory organ at him and looked away."As if."

"Come on, you'll be happy that you tried it. Even when you are at your lowest, you should always try to prepare well-chosen computer storage. However this ends between us, whether we live our life sentence together or our path diverge, don't you want to say you had the courage to get up on that dining table and realise yourself smile ?"

This was strange, why was he being so nice to her ? Whenever he spoke to her before, it was as the Antichrist would : cruel, arrogant, and mocking. But now it was like he was a completely dissimilar person. When she saw him speak to others, he was always form and charming, but she had learned to see through that false persona, sense his deceit. She wasn't feeling it now. This wasn't the mask he wore to cover his evil ; this was a unharmed former side to him. She had felt this before, when she saw his photo album. Helena tried to jib, but any will power she built up just poured out of her like a colander.

"Fine."

She moved to the edge of the pool and climbed out. Walking to the diving control panel, she realized as if for the world-class time that she was naked. Sure, she had been naked this whole time, but at to the lowest degree she had to water system to conceal herself with ! But on the former hand, Xavier was right when he said that he had already seen her the like this.

‘ I guess it really isn't that big a deal.'

She stepped onto the diving circuit card and again felt a small twinge of nervousness, realizing she had basically put herself on exhibit for Xavier like a prize. She shook those cerebration away and cleared her mind, trying to sharpen on how she was going to do this. She dared a coup d'oeil at him. The smile he was wearing was warm, supportive, and sent a Benjamin Rush through her. She again tried to push these strange tactile sensation away, and after a quick hop to progress up DOE, she leapt off the table. She was far from graceful and hit the weewee before she even knew what she had to do.

‘ Ah damn it. Now he'll make fun of me for sure.

Preparing herself for Xavier's ridicule, she surfaced, but couldn't find him anywhere. Had he left ?"Xavier ?"

The reply came when she felt his hands on her back and can end. He burst from the H2O beneath her like a missile, picking her up and tossing her a few feet away with a splatter. She gave a shrill yelp when he sent her airborne, and upon rising to the surface, she splashed him. She didn't do it out of craze or defeat, but out of some sort of childish instinct. Laughing, Xavier splashed her spinal column, and the two of them began fighting in this fashion. They moved around in the syndicate, trying to avoid getting hit with each early's wafture while sending their own, all while the clock left the original deadline in the antediluvian past. For that fourth dimension, Helena could not bar herself from smiling. She didn't want to let in it, but she really was having fun.

Once she got fatigue, she called for a time-out to capture her breath and check the prison term. It shocked her how belated it was. Had she really been so preoccupied to fall behind data track of time to that extent ?

"Uh oh, I really need to get to bed."

"cargo area on. Before you go, I have a proposition."

She turned back to him."What ?"

"well I heard that you're the debauched on the girl's swim squad. How about a ready race ? One lap ? We can even make it interesting."

She looked at him suspiciously."How ?"

"Let's see… How about if you win, you can grant me one free kick to the bollock any time and I can't arrest you. Hard as you want, no apprehension to hold you back, and I won't even use my powers to bar the pain. You can save it for the next time you're angry."

"And if I lose ?"

"You have to revert to your residence hall without your clothes. Let the night air dry you off."

Helena's totally body tightened up at the prospect. On one hired man, the estimation of getting an unhindered kick to Xavier's nuts was a ambition come true, but on the other script, getting caught running naked across the campus would easily be an instant ejection, but she really was the fastest on the swim team, but then again, she wouldn't have brake shoe and the run back would probably be freezing, although…

"No might, right ? You swim like an average human ?"

"Of course."

"Fine."



"darn you, Xavier !"

capital of Montana sprinted across the university campus, naked as a jaybird. Somehow, he had beaten her by a hair, regardless of how difficult she swam. He had teleported her clothes to her room and she had showered, so all that was left was to get back to her dorm room without getting caught and ruining her life. She could only impress at a certain pace without place, and every drop cloth of urine on her strip down body felt like the prod of an icicle. She also didn't like the feel of the cold air on her nude soma, or to be more accurate, she didn't like that she liked it.



Xavier was walking back to his dormitory, whistling to himself with his hair wet from the shower he took after swimming. That had gone even better than expected. He could see it in capital of Montana's eyes, her conflicting touch sensation towards him, caught between hating him for what he was and what he had done, and being drawn to him for his rare kindness and the sexual pleasance he forced her to experience. It was that conflict that strengthened her emotions. He knew precisely how to wangle her intellection and tone and attract her finisher to him. Bending girls'affectionateness had always been sec nature to him, as well as a way to bolt down prison term and indulge his thirst for sadism, but she was different. He wasn't lying to her as he would to any other little girl ; he wasn't holding anything back. It really excited him to see the results of his work. It made him… happy… to see her smile, to know that he had made her smile.

The sound of spray blusher being released and its stinging aroma interrupted him from his persuasion. Who could possibly be out this late ? He followed his nozzle to the spinal column of the gym, his best-loved place to love Lily. There was a young woman there, about Helena's age. She had wiry black hair, tied into pigtails, with a coffin nail between her sass and a can of spray key in her hired hand. On the bulwark was a blood-red pentangle, lopsided and runny like egg vitellus.

She turned to him and took a drag on her cigarette, the end almost as bright as the flame that would feature lit it."What the fuck do you need ?"

Xavier sighed."Satanist ? Really ? Is that your real belief or do you just do it to be a rebel ? Are you just some model that wants to appear cool down to the Catholic schoolgirls ? Why don't you just paint that big A for lawlessness while you're at it."

"Fuck off."

"You the great unwashed always make me laugh. You're more delusional than the Christians and the promiscuous to mess with."

"Hey, I told you to be intimate off !"

"Or else what ? You'll blast me with some heavy metal ?"

She turned and sprayed him in the face with the pigment can, yet not a single drop ever landed. Her eye widened as the crimson rouge simply swirled around him like flames. Her jaw hanging slump, the butt between her lips fell to the ground.

"You should be careful,"said Xavier as he picked it up."You have to make for sure you put it out or else it could start a fire."

He held it up to his face and stabbed himself in the eye with the lit end, extinguishing the ember without even the slightest twinge of hurting.

The girl staggered back."What… what are you ?"

"That depends on your tier of faith. If you are just a fudge Satanist, then I am the man who is about to reverse your life into Hell. If you truly believe in the Antichrist's arrival, in MY arrival, then I am your new Master."

"You're the Antichrist ?"

Xavier's eyes lit up like burning at the stake ember and she was brought to her knee by the free weight of his powerfulness, crushing her from all English like the sea. A wide smile crossed her boldness, when any normal girl would have been crying in affright.

"I've been waiting for this day my entire lifetime, the day when I would finally meet you. It's been my dream to train part in the end of the creation, to help work about the destruction of mankind."

A cruel grinning crossed Xavier's back talk."It seems you may be of some use to me. Very well, I will let you attend me from this peak forward. What is your gens ?"

"Daphne, Daphne Brooke."

"Daphne, do you affirm to do anything I tell you and obey my every statement ?"

"I swear !"

"Do you verify to sacrifice yourself to me, mind, body, and soul ? For every cell and hair to get my property ?"

"I swear !"

"Do you swear to be whatever I command you to be ? To be my servant, my apostle, my slave, my disciple, the toy to stick out the wrath of my lust and thirstiness, as well as my second in dictation ?"

"I swear !"

Xavier began to chuckle and then leaned down. He pressed his tongue to her brow and branded her with the three sixes, while around her neck, an aerial collar formed. She screamed at first gear from the pain, but soon settled once he stood back up.

"Then from this full point forward, you are mine."He then reached down and unzipped his pants, hefting his manhood in front of her face."Time for you to pleasure your new Master."

Without hesitation, she lunged forward and began sucking on his prick, aegir to please him and get her living at the Antichrist's side.



It was a very long and tiring day for Helena. After being up so late the former Night, staying awake in school was a nightmare. She had to allow in, while she had been tempestuous when she went to bed, she had slept very well. It seemed some late-night swimming had allowed her to relieve some of her focus. When she arrived in class for first off period, she felt nervous around Xavier when she should deliver felt fear and hatred. go night, he had made her smile when they swam together.

He looked at her and grinned, giving her that same grinning he wore when he watched her jump from that diving add-in. She averted her gaze, feeling a minginess in her thorax. That grin lacked any sort of nefariousness, and that's what scared her the most. She was also care, as there had been no task written on the concentrated he gave her. Even when she gave the gild for her punishment to commence, nada happened. Was he going to go back to Sophie ? Or did he have something more insidious in mind ?



Thane moved through the school, checking the batteries he had laid out earlier. He carried a device with him that would guess the amount of money of power they had, and if they had lost their armorial bearing, it meant that something supernatural had passed through the area and caused an vitality distortion. The shelling were untouched, all reading full charges. That was three betray tests, the first being the range and the second being the voice recorder. He had gone through the school and used it to put down himself saying prayers from the bible. If there were anything around, it would certainly respond to the sound of praying and hopefully reply. The recorder had picked up nothing. The lone grounds he had was his own gut notion. But was that just a good luck ? Had he been unseasonable about the schooling being haunted ? Or was it possible that he was dealing with something too muscular to be detected by such simple tricks ? He still had one thing left : the picture show he had taken, waiting to be developed.



"So what is your first order for me ?"Daphne asked, walking with Xavier down the hall.
He was preoccupied, looking around at the batteries taped to the walls of the corridor."I'm not sure yet. state me, how long have those been there ?"
She looked at them in disarray."What are those, batteries ? I've never seen those before."
"Very matter to. That's a play a joke on paranormal investigators use to detect the front of John Barleycorn and devil. Is there some sort of ghost hunter club in this school ? Any radical or individual known for doing this kind of thing ?"
"I can intend of one somebody. Alexander Thane, he's a junior exorcist who does work for the Vatican."
"And it seems he's looking for something here. It's quite belike that I'm what he's after."He began to laugh."This could be fun."



The second that Helena lied down on her bed, she knew something was wrong. There was something underneath her pillow. With Sophie working at her desk, she dared a look. It was a portable DVD actor with a red ribbon and the lineup taped on. Sitting next to it was a duo of new headphone, gamey lineament. What in the world… ?

CONSIDER THESE A GIFT, AS well AS YOUR NEXT TRIAL. WATCH THE beginning EPISODE ON THE DVD TONIGHT. THE CHARGER IS UNDER THE BED WHEN YOU indigence IT.

‘ Oh jeez, what now ? Knowing him, this may be a snuff movie or something else awful. Oh well, this could be worse. Hopefully Sophie will go to log Z's soon and the installment will be quick.'

As common, Sophie was passed out within minutes of hitting the pillow, and once she heard snoring, capital of Montana pulled her blanket over her capitulum and turned on the DVD player. She had never used one of these before, but it was easy to figure out. Oh kickshaw, it was porn. Yep, Xavier was making her lookout porn. From just the initiative Sir Frederick Handley Page, it looked like kind of miniseries about college kid screwing each former in between picture of poorly-acted dramatic event, and not for a second did she believe that anyone in this series was under 25. Praying for God to forgive her and protect the purity of her soul, she put on the headphones and selected the offset episode.

For the next hour, she watched the report unfold. When the first sex scene started, her apprehend activated and held her still, fighting her desire to rip off the phone and handle her eyes. She had seen Saint Francis Xavier ravishment Sophie so many fourth dimension before, but this was unlike. The consensual face spared her the fear and anguish she felt during those times, leaving only an instinctive chemical reaction. The tantrum had one of the lowly female character reference fucking her teacher for a better grade, and as she watched them rip off each former's wearable, she felt her soundbox tremor with nervousness. This sense datum, it was almost impossible to describe. It was like the dread she felt when she was called to the Disciplinary citizens committee's authority, but so much more intense, and even… pleasurable. The sight of the woman's breasts made Helena's stomach twist with green-eyed monster. Sure, hers were a right size, but this woman's were like melons. Were those the implants she had heard of ?

She watched as she started sucking him off. The way she looked up at him as she did it, that prurient grin when she pulled it out of her rima oris and stroked it, it brought Helena to a statuesque affectation, so fixated on the movie that she was barely even breathing. for sure it was all acting, but to see that reflection of putrefaction, to see someone experiencing sexual seventh heaven, it was actually making her rummy. Then when he went down on her, Helena's peculiarity grew. What did it palpate like to hold a man do that ? The woman was shaved down there just like Helena. Was this why Xavier had used those flames ? Because he was planning on doing… that… to her ?

Then the real action started. As Helena watched the professor make that initial penetration into the student, she held her breath. To actually see it slide in like that, she didn't interpret how someone could groan like the woman was. Wouldn't it offend ? To have such a big thing pushed inside her ? From there, it progressed as every erotica did, and while Helena had originally been disgusted by the very thought of watching this, now she couldn't look away. She tried to disregard the way her body was heating up from her arousal and the moistening of her scanty. She couldn't pretend that this wasn't exciting her, but her physiologic involvement wasn't as intense as her scholarly interest.

Strange as it may sound, she was actually paying attention to this porno the same way she would an important lecture in one of her course of study, with completely exclusive attention. She was looking at this from the perspective of a bookman, not unlike the student currently being bent over the professor's desk. Every time they did something, be it kiss, occupy in oral, or change side, she studied it closely, her mind thirsty for the information. It was the mechanism that she found so occupy, the way they would incite their bodies. Hell, she hadn't been this singular in a subject since she started taking warlike arts lessons in preparation for joining the Swiss Guard.

There were two more sex scenes in the chapter, much foresighted than the dialogue and plot development between them. Once the sequence stopped, capital of Montana's hand reached out with a will of it's own to start up the adjacent one. Her dog collar stopped her. It seemed that Xavier wasn't just going to make her ticker porn ; he was going to stymy her by keeping it from her when she finally became concerned. With her arousal now replaced with shame for how fixate she had been, Helena turned off the DVD musician and pulled the blanket off her head. The novel air felt as stale as ice to her, at to the lowest degree in equivalence to the oven of her ablaze breathing space under the cover song. She stashed the DVD player under her bed and lied down. It was a slight bit of late, but she wouldn't be as tired the following day. Though with her mind replaying the intact smut, she wasn't sure how easily she'd be able to flow asleep.



Thane stood in the darkroom of the schooltime's photography night club, having finished developing the pictures he had taken. Normally he would be forbidden from using this room or any other at this hr, but with what he had just discovered, rules didn't thing. He was gripping the table, trembling with apprehensiveness at the picture before him. He had snapped it of a corridor between stratum, when it was most crowded with students. Unbeknownst to him, Saint Francis Xavier and Helena were in the picture, caught at the very moment that he used his powerfulness to reach out and deplume on one of the unseeable ropes that had bound her. Deep in the sea of the great unwashed, he could see individual, a figure eclipsed in wickedness, as if the picture had been stained with ink.

"So that's it. It's not just a demon or spirit that I've been sensing, but something pretending to be a student. That's why it hasn't been setting off any of my gob ; the malevolence is pack together and hidden in the body to the decimal point where even I can barely smell out it. This is beyond anything I've ever encountered before. Everyone in the schoolhouse is in danger."



The succeeding run capital of Montana faced was to look out the residuum of the DVD before 5:00. This one would be a petty bit difficult. She had one study lobby during the day but two hours left on the DVD. course ended at 5:00, so if Xavier had just given her one more hour, she would have been fine. No doubt he planned it this way. Her lone selection was to eat a spry lunch, leave to follow the stopping point sequence, and accept being latterly to the class afterwards. What a drag.

At 1:00, Helena's schedule opened up and she came to the classroom where she had her study hall. She signed out to go to the subroutine library and left in a precipitation. She had forgotten the sentence it would take to tie up the on the loose ending and discover a safe space, so no matter what, she was going to be late to her next class. She arrived at the depository library and quickly found the subdued and emptiest stain. She hid out in the corner of the audiotape section of the building. With the new computers that the school had bought, the only spirit this area saw was the janitor. Sitting down on the floor, she opened up the DVD player and turned it on with her phone secured.

The taradiddle picked up from the Night before, with the cliché college drama continuing to play out. Helena tried to discount the bad acting and concentre on the plot, if only to stave off boredom. The first XXX prospect came and capital of Montana blushed with pity and repulsion. It wasn't a sex shot, just one of the college female child masturbating while murmuring the name of a male character. The revolt capital of Montana felt was different from the former night when the first sex prospect started. At least then, she could shrug off the unavoidable sensation of luxuria by telling herself that her body would naturally respond to the sight of two hoi polloi engaging in sex act. spinal column then, she felt like just the observer, like she was a elementary bookman watching a movie in health class. Watching the busty brunette stir her fingers around in her twat removed that mental polisher. This felt much more internal, as if she were being recruited to fill up the role of the second person. The woman might as well have been right in front end of her, knees spread with her chestnut whisker scattered across the dusty library carpeting, murmuring capital of Montana's name.

Helena could find the collar preparing to interpose every sentence she tried to debar her gaze. She had to learn it all the way through. This felt more sinful than the early porno, which in turn made Helena feel more ashamed for watching it. Soon enough, though, she gave in and let her hold down, trying to illuminate her mind so that while she was watching it, none of it was actually sticking. Try as she might, her scholarly curiosity had returned. Having such a close-up prospect of that adult female's slit, smooth as a Barbie doll and dripping with arousal, it invoked an interestingness in Helena as to the mechanics of self-pleasure. She watched every trend of the woman's digit, whether she rubbed them against the puffy outer lips or plunged them into herself. On one helping hand, she was disgusted to be looking at another charwoman like this, but on the other, she was curious as to what it felt like. She refused to let herself say it or even conceive it, but she actually wanted to try it herself.

The woman soon climaxed, but unlike the other female orgasm capital of Montana had seen so far, this woman… went the distance. A stream of pull in fluid spurted from her kitty, transforming into a continuous splash as she desperately rubbed her button with her hand blocking the way. The shrillness of her voice made Helena hinderance over and over again that her headphones were plugged in. She was utterly amazed. If she ever experienced an coming, would she squirt like that ? Not that she wanted to, of course ! She would never do something so sinful ! Either way, the scene was not over.

From her bedside table, the char drew a vibrating dildo, big and pink. capital of Montana's eyes widened in seismic disturbance as she heard it buzz and saw the shudder in the rubber. Was she really going to… ? She did ! The woman plunged the dildo into her pussy, moaning as it rumbled inside her. Helena's wonder was now unify with fear. How could something so big not bruise ? Especially when vibrating like that ? It didn't seem to be painful, as the charwoman moved it back and forth inside her like a sex-crazed zombi. She did this for a couple minutes, switching back and Forth between violently fucking herself with it to simply rubbing it against the entrance and teasing her clitoris.

After her second orgasm, she pulled out another dildo. Helena watched with eyes as wide as dinner plateful as she turned around and jammed the second into her asshole. From there on, she double-teamed herself like a pro, switching between moving them in and out together and having countering drive and pulls.

‘ No way, is it really possible for a woman to be able to do that ? But why put something in there ? That spot is stark !'

This time, Helena didn't bother trying to keep from wondering what that felt like. While she was certain she never wanted to do that ever in her life, she at to the lowest degree allowed herself to have that wonder. Soon enough, the scene ended and returned to the story product line. Helena's collar allowed her to ensure her watch. The study anteroom was half over, and just as she had predicted, the sequence would end at least ten minute of arc after her next class started.
For xv minutes, the story went on, with the mould of acting school dropouts dragging the plot along. Helena actually wanted to get on to the sex so that she wouldn't be bored. Soon enough, that wish was granted, and the scene became a locker room with two little girl in it.

Oh God, please, not this…

Now Helena felt truly guilty for her rarity. As she watched the women kiss, she slapped herself over and over, trying to proceed her body from reacting. Never in her life story had she even looked at a woman with lewd eyes, but to see two of them together with their spit swirling was giving her a pressure perspective, as if she were wearing tinted goggles that showed her some hide verity. She had always been taught that the man body was sinful and that homosexualism was an abomination, but now she was beginning to see the sensual elegance in the womanly shape. The smasher of their faces, the softness of their skin, the youthful due date of their developed bodies. Regular pornography was about highlighting the anatomic link between men and cleaning lady and the way in which nature had designed their bodies to come together. To Helena, the joining of these two women seemed to reward the individual, the two of them reflecting each other and giving fall apart views like butterflies on a mirror.

The previous scene had put a woman on showing, for her torso to be viewed like a museum patch, but with these two char together, it was like they were being scrutinized with all of their feminine attributes put in the public eye. Their strong-arm incompatibility made it so that Helena didn't see the jointure itself, but the sexual potential of these adult female being fulfilled without being restrained by steady intercourse. It was like neither cleaning woman existed when compared to the other, except to congratulate them.

Helena watched as the two women did everything together. They kissed, sucked on each other's breasts, went down on each other, and so on. To her, it was like seeing womanhood in a stage of detail unlike any other. When the episode finally ended, she nearly jumped in surprisal, having been so deeply hypnotized by the view and her own thoughts. She was sore all over, having sat in that position against the rampart with the direction of a Buddhist monastic. She checked her watch. Yep, she was late.

As soon as she got up, she shuddered with superfluity. Her panty were wet.



"don Brian, thank you for seeing me."

"Please, Peter, we don't need to stand on ceremony."

Father Brian and Hauser were in the early's office, just down the lobby from the Disciplinary Committee league elbow room. The two non-Christian priest sat down on either side of the desk.

"So what can I do for you ?"the old non-Christian priest asked.

"Kurt, I wanted to ask you about capital of Montana O'Connor."

Fatherhood Brian sighed with his manus over his human face."Oh Almighty, who did she nonplus up this time ?"

"No, it's zero like that. I'm worried—and this is going to sound ridiculous¬¬¬—that she might be under the influence of something supernatural."

Brian gave him a stern and concerned looking."What do you mean ?"

"She came to me the other day, talking about a pipe dream sent to her by God of a war that will put down this schooling. When I tried to iron for details, she was ineffectual to, as if someone had bought her quiet. Kurt, I've known her since she was a little girl, and I've never seen her scared the way she was. Also, when black lovage Thane returned to shoal, he spoke with me and said that he sensed an evil presence here, unlike anything he's ever encountered. You know of his talent. He's never been wrong."

"And you think it's a planetary house of some kind of self-will ?"

"Or something along those lines. I wouldn't be here if I didn't think it was life-threatening. I'm asking if she was in trouble recently, perhaps made an enemy with an unchristian nature or was at an unholy office, anything that might intend something sticking to her. I heard about those three boys, the ace she fought who killed themselves, but she said nothing happened and I haven't heard anything strange about them. They went to another schooltime and there weren't any reputable rumors that they were involved in Devil worship."

"Didn't you know ? Didn't anyone William Tell you ?"

"Tell me what ?"

"Saint Peter the Apostle, she was at the scene of one of the suicides. The boy who gutted and hung himself, they found her at his threshold, covered in blood and organs and screaming at the top of her lungs. If what you've told me is dependable, then what happened to them is no coincidence. There is something evil following her."



Helena left the cafeteria just as she finished eating her lunch. She had told her friends she was meeting with a teacher for makeup work. The closest and dependable post she could think of was her elbow room, so with her key fruit already in manus, she sprinted across one of the grassy lawns surrounding the cafeteria and entered her hall, hurrying up the steps and down the corridors. Arriving at her room, she unlocked the room access with shaky hands, closed and locked it behind her, and lied down on her bed. She had to end this terminal episode as quickly as potential and get to her next class.

"seminal fluid on, add up on, come on, come on, occur on. Hurry up."

She muttered this nonstop, wishing for the actors to move on to the sex so that at least she'd feel like she was progressing through the narration. Soon enough, that time came, but just like with the second sequence, she didn't get what she had expected. The scene was the locker way of the university football team, with a slutty cheerleader looking back and forth at the half dozen men standing around her, all with prominent erections.

‘ Oh God. This porn just has everything, doesn't it ?'

After everything she had seen, Helena had become a fiddling bit numb to perversion, or at to the lowest degree she hoped she had. As the sex began, she realized just how watery she really was. The cheerleader was on her knee joint, naked, with saliva rolling down her breasts and her forefront surrounded by cocks. Loudly gagging, she ran a chaotic hertz of sucking on the dicks in her nerve and manually stroking off others. She would deep-throat one man while with her mitt she jacked off two others, then another man would step forward and she would let him secure his cock into her mouth like a index socket. The actress had a ravenous look on her face, begging the men for More, but Helena still felt fear in her mettle, like something unspeakable was about to happen.

To be surrounded by so many men while in such a vulnerable position, being passed around like a hoops and abused, it was her definition of perdition. Would any char really put up with this or even desire it ? Wouldn't she be terrified ? All one of them had to do was say"I'm not done yet"and this kind of situation would release into a horror story. Until every man was worn out, she didn't have the option of saying no or asking for a break. She had to let them all use her to their philia'content.

That anxiety escalated when the actual sex started and the men plugged all her trap. At any time, she had one stopcock in her kitty, one in her ass, and one in her backtalk, and if she wasn't using her coat of arms to balance, she was giving handjobs. There were always a duet men in the background, jacking off just enough so that they wouldn't lose their erections. In clip, capital of Montana calmed and a mixture of boredom and opprobrious peculiarity bubbled within her. Just like when she had watched the cleaning lady masturbate with the two dildos, seeing this adult female getting fucked in both the ass and pussycat at once made her wonder what it felt like. Never in her life did she want to try it, but she wouldn't thinker seeing or hearing a description of it.

As expected, many of the shots were from behind when she was getting double-teamed, and capital of Montana wasn't sure if it was the sight of the woman's stern end with both kettle of fish stuffed or the two ball sacks at the top and bottom of the screen that actually made her chuckle while she thought to herself, ‘ What the hell happened to my biography that would make me end up watching this garbage ?'

Eventually, the scene boiled down to the money shaft. All six men were taking tour, blowing their loads into her mouth and on her face, making the woman look like a glazed donut.

‘ Yuck, that scarf out looks so smutty. How can she stand being sprayed with it from so many different guys ? I don't even want to know how hard it will be to get it all out of her hair.'

Once it returned to the normal storyline, Helena readjusted her position in bed, her organic structure again sore from not moving a single centimeter. She checked her alarum clock, seeing that tiffin was just about over and the episode was only half finished. Blah rant blah, to a greater extent dialogue. Ugh, was Xavier really going to make her sentry this poop as well ? Eventually the adjacent sex prospect came, and this one made Helena laugh bitterly. It was the main character in a reversion gangbang. It was in his dorm elbow room with the three lead female fictitious character, deciding that they would all have sex at once to determine which girl he should be with.

"Xavier, you bastard. I bet this is your fantasy."

This clock time, Helena wasn't shocked or surprised by anything she saw. If anything, she was still bored. She had already seen all these characters have sex, so it wasn't like they were showing her anything new. It was also hard for her to subscribe this seriously because she felt like of all the scenes, Saint Francis Xavier had picked this porno just for this one consequence. She didn't know why she thought that, but it was funny, as if she finally had something to jape at Xavier for. As the women moaned and cried out how much they were enjoying themselves, Helena's humour continued to lighten, now realizing just how hilariously cockeyed this all was.

‘ right, like any women would willingly devalue themselves and get some loser's mindless harem.'

The sex ended and at terminal there was the closing scene. The main theatrical role was facing one of the penis of the harem, the young lady that Helena knew from the showtime he would end up with. The instalment was almost over, and with it, this whole laughable series. But strangely, Helena found herself tense. The two characters had yet to even start out speaking, but to her, the piss-poor acting seemed to take in quadrupled in character. Just the looks on their faces showed true spectacular profundity. Even the lighting and camera workplace seemed a hundred times more professional.

"But why would you blame me ?"the woman asked. Helena had watched this woman pine for the lead male person's attention from the very rootage, and found it curious that the character seemed almost angry that she had been chosen."Lindsay was better that I was. It looked like you were having a lot Sir Thomas More fun fucking her than me. Even Chloe was more into it than I was."

The man stepped forward and Helena could not deny that he was very handsome ; a strange matter to guess after the scenes she had seen him in. He lifted her Chin and kissed her."Sex doesn't mean everything. I'm tired of running around, chasing strangers. I want someone I can spend my life with. Lindsay and Chloe were simply more used to doing that kind of thing. It was second nature to them. That kind of wife is only good to have on a natal day, if you get my drift."

Helena's chest stiffen up.

"But you and I are diametric opposite. How can we be together if we have nothing in mutual ?"

"Why are you looking for reasons why this won't workplace ? You never cared before about anything like that. You certainly didn't care about compatibility last nighttime when you let go of all your headache. Let yourself be glad. Get what you want and enjoy it instead of looking for an excuse to agitate it away."

Helena's chest continued to tighten. Of all the porno in the worldly concern, was there any import to this setting that would make Xavier pick it to be the content of her test ? What the man was saying, some of it reverberated in her for a reason she did not know.

The cleaning woman looked up and gave a beautiful grin."Ok, I'm ready."

The scene then ended and the credit rating began to roll. capital of Montana slowly closed the DVD player and sat up. Chuckling to herself, she stowed the device under her bed, feeling like she had just finished a thoroughly book. She felt relaxed, lighthearted, barely caring how late she was for class. Wow. Thinking back, this perverse movie had shown and taught her things that she never imagined. A lot of it, she didn't want to see… at least… she didn't want to see it in the beginning. It was a ungodly and disgusting humanity, but even with horrific playacting, it was still a very honest one. Maybe… it was a unspoiled affair she had seen this. Her innocence had taken a heavy hit because of it and she felt ashamed of herself for watching, but she was lofty to say that it had expanded her parameters. It was a learning experience unlike any early.

Oh well, she should probably get going. But she decided it would be a soundly idea to change into some dry panties first.



"I was right."

Thane slid the photograph across Father Hauser's desk. The young priest took the word picture and closely examined it. The sight of the dark pattern chilled his blood, but the hall was too crowded to determine the identities of any students who might have been around at that time.

"And you're confident that this isn't some error in the growth process ?"

"95 % certain. However, what concerns me is that this is the alone polarity of a occult bearing. I haven't heard any rumor of strange phenomena happening in the schooling, which would coincide with a traditional haunting. Had I not been here, it's possible this entity could possess gone completely unnoticed for God knows how long."

"So do you have it away what this is ?"

"Something new. I believe it to be some kind of demonic entity masquerading as a student. Its evil is far more powder compact and stable than in a regular paranormal case."

Hauser didn't respond, simply continuing to stare at the exposure. None of this was making sense. He and Father Brian had both come to the conclusion that capital of Montana was possibly the dupe of some kind of self-control, but if what Thane was saying was dead on target, then this was far more complicated. On the former hand, that could actually be capital of Montana in that characterization and the lightlessness was the result of the daimon clinging to her. Either Helena was possessed or the entity was something other than a unconstipated demon.

"Since I was able to get it on celluloid once already, that will be my strategy from this point forward. I already told the headmaster about this and he's agreed to let me exact pictures of all the division under the guise that I'm doing it for the yearbook."

"Very well. Is there anything I can do to help ?"

"You are a teacher, meaning that you have access to student files. Try to find something that doesn't belong."





Chapter 6



MASTURBATE UNTIL COMPLETION SIX metre TODAY. YOUR COLLAR WILL William Tell YOU WHEN. DISOBEY AND THE DEAL WILL BE BROKEN. OH, AND DON'T EVEN THINK OF career IN SICK AND STAYING LOCKED IN YOUR residence hall ROOM.

Helena stared at the scorecard in horror, feeling like she was going to scream. That bastard ! Bad enough he put her in those fearsome ropes the other day, now he wanted her to despoil herself in sinful toilet table ! And even unsound, he had forbidden her from just skipping schooltime and hiding away from everyone.

"God, I swear to you, I will kill this monstrosity if it's the last thing I do !"

Her collar then activated, appearing around her cervix and grumbling. Saint Francis Xavier wanted her to… feeling herself ? Right now ? ! This was too sudden ; she had never done this kind of thing before ! But she was in her dorm room, which meant she had privacy… at to the lowest degree until Sophie came back. She had given her the same excuse as the break of day before yesterday and bought herself some time. How long did she have got before her champion came barreling through the doorway and caught her in the midst of her scandalous act of hedonism ? The apprehension's heating and power increased, telling her that she was running out of time. She had to do it now or else the deal would be broken and Sophie would be served up to Xavier on a ash grey platter.

"All right, I'll do it ! Just… sacrifice me a minute."‘ And now I'm asking this dog collar for mercy. Oh how I love my life…'

Resigning herself to her fortune, she climbed back into bed and lied on her back. How was she supposed to do this ? She had certainly gotten an orientation from that porno, but all the details seemed be slipping out of her mind. If she just… started, maybe she would be able-bodied to compute it out. Taking a deep breath and praying for God to forgive her, she slipped her mitt into her panties. Her shape was still as suave as glass from Xavier's flames, as if her soundbox was incapable of producing new whisker follicles, and she had to accommodate, the softness of her skin didn't feel half bad. She slowly traced the petals of her Virgo the Virgin flower with her fingertips, feeling that gentle touch reverberate through her abject soundbox. It was like a tickle, one that didn't make her laugh but instead made her finger warm. She did this for a couple minutes, letting herself get used to the maven. Her breath flutter, she pushed it further and moved her finger between the lips, stroking the pink Department of the Interior. She could feel herself becoming wet, her consistence reacting to the stimulus.

She continued on like that for five minute of arc, the guilt of her sin being washed away by the liquidity stimulation clinging to her fingertips. She could not refuse the joy she was feeling, the diffused deadbolt of electricity crackling through her body. But she felt moribund, knowing that there was to a greater extent she had to do.

‘ How will I know when I'm done ? Do I really have to have an orgasm ? I'm not sure I'll get one at this rate, considering what I saw that fair sex do. Should… should I try going inside ?'

With her eyes screwed shut, she slowly inserted her middle digit into her slit, making her shudder in the sudden waving of strange bliss. It felt good. She began moving it back and Forth, her finger sliding effortlessly through her velvet sleeve. Her fluttering breaths became deep drawers, with her muscles expanding and contracting and making her writhe and stretching.

‘ Oh God, oh God, oh God !'

She couldn't help it ; she needed more. She inserted her index finger as well, while her left mitt struggled to find something to grab onto. At first she clutched her shoulder, then her arm, but at go settled by grasping her breast. Her hand was under her bra, her palm massaging her womanly shelf. Had her pelt always been so soft and polish ? Had her breasts always been this gravid ? She experimentally gave her tit a voiced jot and gasped, feeling as if a bolt of lightning was stretching between the gentle nub and her pussy. Her whole body was becoming tense and hyper, like Restless Leg Syndrome. She started arching her spine and then curling up, her voice beginning to slew free between her frenetic pants.

A computer storage flashed through her head. Saint Francis Xavier had done the very same thing to her in the church building. He had embraced her, using one handwriting to fondle her titty and the other script to finger her pussy.

‘ No ! I can't think about that now !'

She tried to press the retentiveness out of her creative thinker, feeling it contaminating the pleasure she was feeling. Regardless, it crept in, her imagination syncing up the past tense and the present so that her hands became his.

‘ Get out of my head ! I want zip to do with you !'

She tried even harder to keep back the thoughts out, focusing solely on the pleasance and the physical aspects. She was so close ; she could sense it. But she could see Xavier's munition around her, this figment of her imagination flashing in and out of her head's eye like a strobe light. She could find his hint and brim on her neck and smell that masculine odour that his bed shared. Her will breach, those thoughts of Saint Francis Xavier momentarily flooding her thinker, and in that bit, she came. Wave of euphory, ineffable to her innocent someone, submerged her consistence in a hot bathtub while billions of tiny massage therapists gave every muscle a deep rubdown. Her part slipped free, a ace moan echoing through her room, while she could feel drops of her arousal splattering against her palm.

Soon, the bliss ended, and she was left gasping for air with her chest heaving and her psyche dark. What in the reality had become of her ? She dreamed of becoming the low gear female appendage of the Swiss people Guard, but now found herself the captive of the Antichrist, rolling in bed while pleasuring herself like a common heretic. The shoe collar was calm now that she had satisfied the command. With a entire day of school and five more than sessions to go at random prison term, how in the globe would she do this ? delay, people wouldn't be capable to see it, would they ? She sighed. There was no point in worrying about it. She could do nothing but hold for the collar to reactivate and then amount up with a plan.

After taking a moment to ask God to forgive her for her sinful act, she got dressed and left her hall room for the cafeteria. There was still plenty of fourth dimension before breakfast ended. Once there, her friends all began complimenting her, claiming that she had never looked so vibrant and full of life.



Xavier glanced back, hearing the clicking of a camera. He was in a push hall, and holding the photographic camera was a student he had seen before. Tattooed, disheveled, and with a bandana around his school principal, Xavier remembered seeing in the kitchen. He had also gotten a unknown vibe off him. Was he the exorcist that daphne had told him about ?

‘ What was his name ? Andy Cain ? Andrew Bane ? No… Alexander Thane. Yeah, that was it. With him taking pictures like that, I can't use my powerfulness around him. Or wait… what do I look like when I have my moving picture taken ? Wow, the class are starting to take their toll. Oh well, I might as well dedicate him something to chase.'



Trying to assert her dignity, Helena left the classroom and walked down the entrance hall. The collar had activated and was buzzing around her cervix. Luckily, it didn't seem like anyone had seen or heard it. She was off to institutionalize the sin again, this time in the bathroom. How dread. She entered the can and checked each stand to hold sure they were evacuate. Finding herself alone, she locked herself in the corner kiosk. Muttering bane, she removed her doll and panties and left them folded on the crapper paper dispenser. She sat on the toilet, her grimace in her hands, contemplating her shame. The heat of the collar increased, telling her that it was now or never.

Sighing in reluctance, she reached between her legs and began toying with her slit. Her fingers found their way into her a lot leisurely than the offset time. She leaned back against the tank, letting the pleasure steadily build with the sliding of her fingers. This was only her sec time masturbating, but in a good sense, it already routine, like she had mastered it eld ago and was now just going through the motions.

howdy, what was this ? At the top of her vagina, she had found a bump in the corner between her lips. She had seen it before in the porno, but she didn't know what it was for. It was very raw, with the CVA of her fingers sending shock through her body. She recognized this feeling and location. The early day, there had been a gnarl in her invisible bonds, pressed to this very location. The more she touched it, the more noticeable it became, soon feeling like one of the immobilize pea that baby Olivia would receive her kneel on during detention. She rubbed it with her thumb while working her index and middle finger inside her, liking the sensations she was being blessed with.

The opening of the lav door hit her like an invisible punch. Two girl had just stepped in. They were standing by the row of sink, just talking and complaining about the schooltime. Just by their feeling, she could recite these girls were of the Saami ilk as Daphne. She stopped her paw, waiting for them to leave. Not ten seconds after she pulled her finger's breadth free, the neckband reactivated, telling her that if she didn't resume masturbating, the lot would be broken and Sophie would be put back in danger.

‘ Please ! Not now ! Just expect a instant and I'll get back to it after they leave !'

The collar didn't stop and she reluctantly continued pleasuring herself, now using her free bridge player to cover her oral cavity and hold back her pants from being heard. The girls'conversation didn't end quickly ; they continued to vent about how a good deal they hated the school. Every word they spoke sent a shiver up Helena's spikelet while she pleasured herself. These female child were having a conversation, while not ten feet away, she was stirring her pussy like a biblical whore. What if they were to determine out she was there ? What if they caught her in the act ? ! She could get expelled from the shoal for this ! She would never be allowed to enter the Swiss Guard ! If she wasn't careful now, her unscathed hereafter would be ruined !

One of the little girl leaned against the stall door, her shoes right in capital of Montana's scene. Oh god, she was so close ! veneration was pumping through her venous blood vessel like her rake, but that care was quickening the poke of her finger and strengthening the reaction she felt. Beneath her, the toilet gave the slightest creak from her shifting wait. To Helena, it was like the roar of a buzz saw, but luckily, the other two girlfriend didn't seem to hear it. She adjusted her lieu and kept going. She could feel it bubbling inside her, her next orgasm. Just a little more ! A little Sir Thomas More ! A tidal wave of pleasance at last swept through her, making her totally body writhe as if she were suffering a gaining control. But while her hand was over her rima oris, her part managed to slip through.

The two girls heard it, the small squeak, that human whimper. The little girl leaning against the door stepped back and turned around."Hey, is someone in there ? !"

For a second, Helena's mind shattered the likes of glass as her whole sunk future flashed through her creative thinker, but ingenuity immediately struck her. Holding her tongue out tightly between her rim, she blew, imitating the haphazardness of a loud and wet fart.

"Sorry, I was trying to hold that in until you two left."

Swearing in disgust, the girls rushed out. Helena sat there on the gutter with her fingerbreadth still inside her, wearing null but a bra and blouse, once again alone. She didn't know if it was the aftereffects of her orgasm or pridefulness in her brilliance, but she burst into unmanageable laugh, easily the hardest she had laughed in years.



Helena was now in class, listening to Sister Olivia turn over a lecture on famous pieces of art in the Catholic world. The day of her third tryout was still going and she had already masturbated three clock time. Her eyes were on Xavier, sitting two rows away in the middle of the room, a look of boredom on his face as the lesson progressed. Slowly, he brought down his arm, letting it hang with his hand below his chair. capital of Montana's bosom began to slipstream. What was he doing ? He was up to something ! He snapped his fingers, so gently that it wasn't even hearable. The pinch around her neck opening activated, heating up and buzzing against her flesh. She could not see it, but he had grown his earmark insidious grin.

‘ Bastard !'

She raised her hand, but Sister Olivia had her back turned and was writing on the board. With a twirl of his finger's breadth, Saint Francis Xavier increased the bodily process of the collar. metre was running out, she had to make her escape.

She gave a lowly cough. *Ahem*"exculpation me, Sister Olivia ? May I please be excused ? I'm touch sick."

The nun turned to her, an peeved frown on her face."No, you may not. If you're impression sick, that's the noble punishing you for being a bad student. Don't you dare break up my lesson again."

The collar was still active and becoming more intense, telling Helena that the deal was about to be broken. It was time for something drastic. Turning in her chair, she buckled over and began pretending to dry-heave, causing everyone to look at her with concern. Hiding the bowel movement and acting like she was trying to keep her mouth from possibility, she jammed her finger down her throat and triggered her gag reflex. In that moment, every muscleman and vein in her head tightened like piano conducting wire, making her flavor like her skull would be crushed under the force per unit area. Her half-digested luncheon was poured out onto the floor, sending a Benjamin Rush of disgust through the stallion class.

"Out ! Out !"Sister Olivia screamed.

Spitting out the disgusting remains, Helena got to her feet and staggered out of the classroom, clutching her now aching stomach. Behind her, the ease of the year was herded into the hallway until a keeper could come and clean up the mess.

Xavier watched her run off, chuckling to himself. ‘ Impressive. I'll have to reward her for that.'



Helena certainly felt better coming back from the bathroom. Her stomach was still a petty sore, but she had flushed her organic structure with endorphins when she rubbed one out. Unfortunately, after a stunt like that, she would be the subject of ridicule and rumormonger for a while. She returned to the classroom, now cleaned up and with the windows open to remove any mill about olfactory perception. The other educatee all tried not to calculate at her.

"O'Connor, you've earned yourself a week of detention."

The nun's annunciation brought capital of Montana to a utterly stopover, her boldness flushed red and her mind rebooting from the indescribable rage now flooding her.

"excuse me ? Are you being serious rightfulness now ? Did you not just see me shed up after telling you that I was sick ?"

Xavier was also looking at baby Olivia, his eyes lit with anger unbefitting of his character.

The nun exploded, having never before been questioned like this."Don't you dare acquire that tone with me ! You interrupted my lesson and defiled my classroom ! One Sir Thomas More word and I'll put the veneration of God in you !"

The Bible came out before Helena could blockade them."nookie you."

Everyone in the room became as pale as corps, all feeling like person was squeezing their innards in a bench vise. Practically foaming at the mouth, Sister Olivia rushed towards the defiant pupil, her trusty meter reefer raised to work over that spiteful look off Helena's face. Helena put her right invertebrate foot back, readying herself to deliver a clout if the nun went through with it. She could easily get expelled for this, but she was too pissed off to care. The flash of a black coat swooped between them with one hand grabbing sis Olivia's wrist and the other seizing Helena's shoulder. Xavier had gotten in the way, leaping over a row of desks like an acrobat. He held her shoulder joint with his thumb pressing down on her arm, using his sinful strength to keep her from moving that joint or bringing her arm forward. He wasn't just keeping her safety from Sister Olivia ; he was actually stopping her from doing something reckless.

"As a pupil, I have no right to speak, but I can no longer excuse your cruel and draconian means of subject field. No teacher worth their salt would ever lay their hand on a scholar. Helena was disturbed and you denied her a chance to recover from her unwellness discretely. This is your geological fault, not hers. You have no ground to punish her."

"I'll see you both expelled for this ! You ungrateful, belligerent maggots !"

With lightning speed, Xavier snatched the meter stick out of her hand and began spinning it."And I'll see you fired. If you want us punished, get on your articulatio genus and beg the Disciplinary Committee to take action."He then snapped the meter peg with his digit, sending splinters flying and making all the bookman shiver."Because I certainly won't solvent to you."

Whether it was the strength of his words or some kind of unholy power, Helena wasn't sure, but whatever it was, it made Sister Olivia storm out of the schoolroom to bump the Disciplinary Committee.

"Helena,"said Xavier, making her facial expression up at him though unable to see his human face."I suggest you go back to your hall room and get some balance. The sick belong in their beds."

Once again, Helena didn't know if it was the way he spoke or the gist of his powers, but she wordlessly retrieved her account book bag and left.



"What can I do for you, Master ?"

smiling, Xavier pulled Daphne finale and kissed her. Her oculus rolled back into her straits, her Satanic kernel overwhelmed with the happiness of being kissed by the Antichrist. But wait, there was something entering her sass from his, early than his knife of class. She could experience it running down her throat and filling her whole body. It felt like death. He pulled his back talk away, revealing a contraband miasm flowing into her pharynx from him. The miasmal current ended and Daphne fell to her knees, gasping for air.

"Ugh, disgusting. I'm from nether region and the gustation of those menthols is making even me sick. Seriously, girl, cut down on the smoke. That's what you can do for me. In all serious-mindedness, I have just given you a bit of my power. That guy, Thane, he's been taking pictures in search of me. If you use that power when he snaps a exposure, you'll appear as a black specter. I want you to get trouble around the schooling that will send him running. chance event, trauma, you know, just act like a poltergeist."

She sat up straight and bowed to him."I'll do your bidding. Is there anything else ?"

Xavier's smile gained a sadistic twist."Yeah, be at my room at 6:30 tonight."



The redheaded jeune fille was lying in bed, doing everything she could to not suppose about Xavier. She didn't even know why she was in her dorm room, she wasn't actually disgorge. Oh well, she only had another two form that day, and after hearing what happened, her teachers would probably be indulgent. She could at least use this time to canvas. About to reach for a textbook, the buzzing of her apprehension drew a sigh of annoyance. imprecate it, this was the fifth sentence. Oh well, might as well just do it and delight the privacy.

She reached into her panties and began massaging her button, playing with it like a midget joystick. Her sum began to backwash, her breathing becoming shoal. She worked her digit inside herself, relishing the feel of her interior. It was so flaccid and wet, and hot enough to make her flavor like her digit were melting. With her free mitt, she started squeezing her breasts, knowing just how to stimulate herself for the best results.

‘ I will include this does feel wonderful, but this is seriously becoming a task. pillock Xavier, that black-hearted dickens spawn. Making me sin like this so that my booster doesn't get raped, how twisted can one man be ? And what the hell was that stunt during class ? Who is he trying to fool ?'

Memories of that tantrum flashed through her mind, the flock of Xavier jumping in front of her and protecting her from Sister Olivia's swing, and the feel of his brawny script on her shoulder, completely immobilizing her with that simple soupcon.

She rolled on her side, her fingerbreadth continuing to slither through her pussycat. ‘ He was just showing off, cocky son of a bitch. The next meter I see him, he'll probably say something lame like"nonentity punishes you but me ”. He's genitive enough as it is, I don't need him fighting my battles for me.'

She then pulled the blanket of her bed over herself, finding something comforting in the weight on her organic structure and the way it rubbed against her when she moved. ‘ Not to mention it was his fault that I'm in this mess. sister Olivia wouldn't have been mad at me if he hadn't put me in that position. What the the pits is he trying to get at with this anyway ? Does he call back that tying me up or making me touch myself with turn of events me into some kind of harlot ? As if !'

She had her eyes closed with a blush on her face. She was chewing on her thumbnail, while under the blankets, the movements of her early bridge player increased in speed. ‘ The future prison term I see him, I'll break his wind. I won't let this damn collar slack me down. That's right, the following time. I'll punch him in his self-satisfied typeface so hard that he'll go crying back to his daddy.'

She continued fantasizing about beating the bullshit out of Xavier the side by side time she saw him, but every meter, the aspiration just got light. At first she imagined torturing him like a Spanish interrogator, then it shrank down to just beating him up, then to just punching him once, and then just to the moment where she would see him in the mansion house or excrescence into him at a recession. Her finger's breadth were moving at their uttermost speed, her consistence exponentially close to an orgasm, while in her mind, his face occupied her resourcefulness. She finally came, while at the Lapplander prison term, her judgment flashed her back to the church when he had fingered her.

She came to a stopover, panting heavily with the mantle around her tactual sensation like Saint Francis Xavier's arms. ‘ I won't lose, I won't let him flap me. He'll never win my heart.'



Lily stood in nominal head of Xavier's student residence room, afraid to strike hard. He had left her a note inviting her, saying that his roommate would be gone and they could spend some time together. It wasn't the rule forbidding her mien in the boys'dorm that left her ossify, but the sounds coming from inside. She could get word heaving, moaning, and the squeaking of mattress springs. With her eyes wet, she knocked on the door.

"ejaculate on in."

She opened it and stepped inside, the sight before her hitting her in the chest like a car. Saint Francis Xavier was on his bed with an upperclassman that Lily didn't recognize, some young lady with black hair. He had her on all four-spot and was thrusting into her dripping cunt with his whole dead body weight, making her moan as her pallid ass clapped against his second joint. He looked at Lily, a grin on his face, as if unaware of the comportment of the girl he was fucking.

"Don't be shy, come on in. Take a seat, work yourself comfortable."

"Y-you're cheating on me ? !"she cried, stepping closer as if to make sure her eye weren't playing caper on her.

"What ? Of course not ! How could you even ask me that ? ! You know I love you !"

He denied it without ever stopping his thrusts.

"But you're making erotic love to another girl !"

"Her ? Oh no, you misunderstand. This is Daphne, a honorable friend of mine, and this is a game we've been playing since we were tyke. We're not making love, just goofing around. It's only sex. It doesn't mean anything. I only make love to you, Lily. I love you with all my heart. remember the rules ? We both have to be intimate each other more than anyone else possibly could ? I still enjoy you more than anything, and I guarantee you you'll never find someone who loves you to a greater extent than I do. see ? I would never betray on you because I love you. Take a seat, relax."

While Xavier tried to tranquillise Lily down, Daphne was intoxicated with sexual pleasure. This was the honorable screw she had ever had. Saint Francis Xavier was brutal, knowing which pip to hit and slamming it like a sledgehammer. He didn't give her any rest, any clemency, or even a consequence to call up between thrusts. She felt like a porno star."Oh yes ! laborious ! Faster ! shag me more ! thrust your pecker deep into my slutty puss !"

Lily's idea was screaming at her that this was wrong, that he was tricking her, that he didn't love her, but her heart was too terrified to believe it. He had always told her he loved her, why would he lie ? He loved her, that's all that mattered. He wasn't cheating on her, just playing with a supporter of his. It was ok, she had no reason to doubt him. She couldn't grip losing him ; no one would love her as much as he did. Yes, it was better to just accord and not rock the gravy holder. If she made the fuss, she would feature to punished, and that would hurt them both. She had to be a good girl.

She sat down on the level, switching her regard between Xavier and daphne and the level over and over again. No matter how much she rationalized it, seeing Xavier thrusting his humanity into another cleaning woman made her tactile property sick, but she didn't have the will to disobey him. She would look down at the rug, telling herself that everything was ok, but then a groan or oink would describe her heart back up and she would see the two of them drenched in sweat, their defenseless soundbox pressed together, sucking on each other's tongues, and doing all the things that he did with Lily.

The knot in her belly tightened as Xavier grunted, telling her he had just ejaculated. He pulled out of the girl with a string of semen still connecting her slit to his deflating manhood.

"You… you came inside her. You gave her your love life ! You're only supposed to that with me !"

"Lily, darling, relax. It was just a physical reaction. Besides, it's still yours. Daphne, throw it to her."

She got to her metrical foot and approached Lily. She stood over her and spread the sass of her pussy, the girlfriend's tear-streaked face in from the dribbling seed.

She gave a coy smile."semen on, this is what you want, right ?"

Lily stared at it with shock and terror. How could she be expected to do something so revolting ? Xavier had convinced her to do a lot of affair that scared and embarrassed her, but this was too much. She couldn't…

"Lily, what are you waiting for ? Don't you want my love ? I thought you didn't want to be alone anymore."

The Word broke what little will she had left, and with refreshing bout rolling down her boldness, she leaned forward and hesitantly flicked her glossa against the exposed labia. She could taste Xavier's ejaculate, and it gave her the courage to go along licking. Daphne giggled and put her hand on the back of Lily's promontory, pushing her deeper. She didn't resist the miss's handgrip on her, she simply continued licking the semen out of her kitty-cat while trying to ignore the nefariousness of the act. She could taste it, her distaff marrow. It made her own consistency shake as she realized that this was how she too tasted. Once Daphne's pussycat was cleaned out, Lily licked up the white watercourse that had run down her thighs.

"Ok Daphne, you can go."

She wordlessly obeyed, picking up the jalopy of her clothes and stepping naked into the hall.

Lily remained on the base, overwhelmed with disgust. Xavier got up and stepped over to her, standing over her as Daphne had done. She looked up at him, staring at his hardening manhood.

"I still have rafts of sexual love for you if you want it."

Her eyes blank, she nodded and took his cock in her mouth, sucking it neat of seminal fluid and the other girl's wetness.

Xavier rubbed the top of her capitulum."See ? unspoilt girls get rewarded."



"So what do you reckon is going to happen when Sister Olivia shows up ?"

capital of Montana perked up, turning to Sophie. She was eating breakfast with her friend and the mood had suddenly turned sour.

"What ?"

"You didn't go to custody go night. She'll probably burst in like the Four horseman and decapitate you with a flaming sword."

A flash of spiteful choler allowed Helena to regain her composure."fountainhead unless she tells me that I've actually been expelled, I don't guardianship about what she has to say. I'm done being afraid of her."

"You sound like Xavier,"said one of her friends.

The words sent a bolt of lightning of electricity up her spine.

Sophie began to giggle."Yeah, you really do. noble, forgive my sinful feelings, but when he jumped between you two and broke her ruler, it was one of the nerveless things I had ever seen. I could have almost fallen for him."

The other lady friend all squealed and laughed, but Helena had to contain her look of unbelief and terror. She had seen Xavier rape Sophie for hours on end, and even if her memories had been erased, to hear her say such a thing about Xavier made her neediness to shake off up. Then there was her other cause to be concerned : Xavier hadn't yet given her a chore for the day. The carte du jour had just told her to wait, but it was the waiting that was truly killing her. Regardless of her concern, the retentiveness of him shielding her from babe Olivia flashed through her mind as it had again and again, and for the ease of breakfast, she couldn't get it out.



Helena sat at her desk, waiting for the first grade to start. Everyone was anxious, unsure of what would happen when Sister Olivia arrived. Neither capital of Montana nor Saint Francis Xavier had attended detention the dark before, both because they weren't sure they still had it and as a signboard of protestation if they did. The door opened and the nun stepped inside, looking far more stock than usual. She avoided looking at the class and simply began writing at the bored. capital of Montana's tenseness increased, almost wishing that whatever was going to happen would just happen already. The class progressed without any incidents. Not once did Sister Olivia provoke her voice, scold anyone, or even calculate at the course. What was with her ? Was she so angry that she had actually snapped ? Or was there some early reason for her behavior ?



Ten time of day earlier :

Olivia looked around, wondering whether or not she was dreaming. She was standing in the university church building, but she couldn't remember how she had gotten there. She remembered going to bed, she was even wearing her gown. The looking of the church… was dissimilar from what it would usually be. All the candles were lit, but instead of the beautiful lightness they usually cast, they instead produced an ominous, almost blooming radiance.

"At first I thought it was simply angriness payoff, but I'm pretty sure I have you figured out. Your nonindulgent rules and itchy initiation finger when it comes to punishment, it isn't regular nun cruelty. You simply love to inflict pain."

She turned around, spotting Saint Francis Xavier walking down the aisle. Like the church, there was something different about him. His eye were wide of the mark than before, bloodshot, and his grin was savage.

"Xavier ? ! What in the Godhead's public figure are you doing here ? ! Students aren't allowed in the church after hr and you're in decent trouble as it is ! Get—"

Her branch and torso burst in a chain of small blowup, splattering her lineage across the pews, as if she had just been hit with half a twelve cervid biff. She was thrown back, pouring blood from her wounds and backtalk, but when she hit the ground, her body was completely intact. She lay on the floor, panting like she had just run a marathon as she tried to bottom what had just happened to her.

"But that is a trouble. You see, when two sadists meet, there is an unavoidable fate…"Xavier stood over her, his face having lost the masquerade of humans. He grinned at her with his teeth looking like the cartridge of a nail gun. He had his hand over his cheek like a mask, with his clapper now several times its master copy length and wrapped around his wrist, and razor claws at the baksheesh of his fingers, one of which he dragged across the Earth's surface of his eye and torus candid."When two sadists meet, one inevitably devours the other, and you are way out of your league."

She stared at him, all braveness and strength robbed from her soulfulness at the great deal of his unholy creature."What in God's gens are you ?"

"I can't even evidence you how many fourth dimension I've been asked of that question. In a way, it's flattering, but now I'm sort of sick of hearing it."

With a twirl of his fingerbreadth, he materialized a ball gag that wrapped around her drumhead and secured itself in her mouth. She tried to pull it out, but from the rafters of the church building, a rope reached down and snapped around her wrists. It locked her arms behind her back and pulled upwards, forcing her to her feet and threatening to splay her shoulders.

"Normally I would let you bear your fun. After all, there is nothing I love more than watching others suffer. However, when you start hassling Helena, I become pissed. I don't blame you for not knowing, but that young woman belongs to me. She is my property. I have plenty of other plaything that I would happily let you abuse, but she's special. I'm the only one who gets to torment her, and since you got in my way, I decided it's fourth dimension for you to face some penalization of your own."

He snapped his fingerbreadth, summoning his malicious fire to burn away her dress and all of her soundbox hair. The church was filled with the auditory sensation of her riot, but cipher would ever hear her. The flaming receded and she whimpered in painful sensation, but her rage allowed her to overcome her embarrassment. She glared at him, as if to ask"how dare you ?"

"You are not the first sadist I've encountered in my long life. I've torment plenty of others, and I must say, they can be the most entertaining."

Xavier strode past her and gave a lazy swish of his hand. Without even touching her, he opened four retentive cuts across her belly. She screamed through her gag with her descent running down her legs and dripping on the carpet.

"You see… it is not quite pain that sadists are after, but the might of inflicting pain in the ass. They seek the knowledge that they can do whatever they want to person and expression no repercussions from it. They enjoy the ability remainder between their dupe and themselves and want their victim to be as mindful of it as possible."He began whisking his pincer against her back, one finger at a time, each one drawing forth more blood line."They remind their victim of this with every… last… scratch."

He came around to her front and dragged the claw of his index finger across her clavicle, sending trickles of crimson running down her chest. Leaning down, he laughed and gluttonously licked the blood off her melon-sized tits, taking surplus sentence to lactate on her nipples. She shuddered in revulsion, feeling him thrill her areola with his tongue and lips.

He then moved up, licking away her tears while whispering in her ear."But when the sadist is the victim, they realize just how powerless they really are. All their life has been spent in trying to maintain absolute control over every facet of their world, but now, what piddling authority they have is taken away from them. Beyond the pain, beyond the humiliation, they are forced to digest from their greatest fear : the realness that they are mere insects, ineffective to do anything at all if something whole step on them."

His pincer disappeared and he jammed his fingerbreadth into her pussy while pinching hard on her button. Sister Olivia screamed at the top of her lungs, having never known that whizz such as these even existed. The brutality invoked annoyance in her, but the stimulation drew a physiological reaction of a enjoyable tactile sensation. With his early hand, he grabbed throat, leaving her struggling for every breath.

"Tell me, how does it sense ? In your classroom, you were a queen, a god even. Your students were terrified of you and you handed out punishment like it was second gear nature, released it like your breathing space. Here, you are cipher. Look around. There are no students following your every discussion, no one is here trying to stay in your trade good graces. Has it hit you yet ? The say-so you thought you wielded was nothing to a greater extent than an magic trick, a bare oddity of your position as a teacher. ‘ You're fired ’, all you needed to hear were those two words, and in a month, you'd be sucking cock on the street niche to pay your pecker. You are zippo more than an unimportant homo, clinging to titles and bureaucratism so that you can give meaning to your life through the pain you inflict on others."He turned around and took a few steps away."Through my cruelty, I shall teach you kindness. Your body is beautiful, very aphrodisiac, and it shall assist as the canvas in which I will paint a portrait of repugnance. But let's not bucket along matter ; we have all night after all. number one things first, I want a taste."

More ropes reached down from the raftsman, this time wrapping around her knees and lifting them up. She cried out from the hurting in her berm as she was pulled off her groundwork, using all of the strength in her arms to keep the roast from dislocating when her consistency was plow horizontal. The circle then pulled her legs apart, as if the binds were threaded through invisible pulleys. One final leash wrapped around her shoulders and neck, keeping her from tilting all the way over. Saint Francis Xavier set about, running his fingers against her labia. She struggled against her binds, outraged from his violating touch sensation. Smirking, he kneeled down and ran his tongue between her backtalk. The blood from her cuts had congealed like hot fudge, mixing with the preference of her woman into a delicious dessert for the black-hearted Antichrist.

Sister Olivia doubled her effort to break free of her bonds, struggling not just to escape, but to push aside the sensations pulsing through her. His tongue was slithering inside of her like an eel, several clip longer than the tongue of an median human. It almost felt like it was lined with hundreds of tiny sucking cupful, latching onto every nervus ending in her vagina and pulling on it. He was drinking in her wetness, savoring it like nectar. The nun's sticker locked up, her total body going stiff as she felt him insert his fingers into her asshole. He began to express mirth, continuing to shift his tongue inside her pussy was thrusting his finger inside her anus. With each push, he could feel her cunt getting bed wetter and wetter. Olivia's whimper of pain in the ass and humiliation began to change, becoming shrill whines as undeniable pleasure soaked through her unanimous body. She could feel something coming ; she could palpate cracks in the ice beneath her feet. He could sense it as well, prompting him to double over his efforts.

Leaning her head back, Olivia cried out through her gag, squirting like a thrust lemon. Xavier got to his substructure, licking his lips in satisfaction."I thought you would hold out foresighted. Look at yourself, a twain fingers in your hinder door and a natural language in your snatch and you turn into a waterfall. Pathetic. Oh how I would have a go at it to bring in all of my fellow students and exhibit them past you, let them see you now. Let them see what even the nonindulgent Sister of the church service becomes when she meets a force greater than herself. This is true power, the ability to divulge humans as the lowly animals they really are."

He undressed, revealing his erect manhood. Olivia squealed at the sight of it, knowing what was coming. He stood between her legs, letting his phallus lay draped over her pussy like a fallen tree.

"A adult female's virginity is a good story matter. Its value variety depending on the age. A small young lady's virginity is invaluable, but not in a way that makes it desirable. It is so a percentage of her body that to take it is an act of pure defilement. To take it when she doesn't have the maturity or age to know what it is… is like winning a fight by kicking a man in the balls. It's just a low act. No one but a pedophile would be willing to take a little daughter's virginity, because it would mean destroying the pureness and ingenuousness that makes her such a treasure.

When a girlfriend reaches adolescence, it becomes worthful. She is now cognisant of herself, of her sexuality. She is still young, her sexual nitty-gritty still pristine and pure, uncontaminated by the world around her. If she feels lust, men will want to fill her, to feel her gratitude in welcoming her to the adult mankind. They want to unleash the vixen, see the energy of young and help her to search. If she is shy, men will desire to teach her, show her the world she hides from, and see the beautiful cascade of expressions from her perfect somebody : awe, painfulness, sorrow, fulfillment, enjoyment, and finally sexual bliss. They want to know the joy of holding that small, nervous fauna in their men, of having nail control over her and bending her to their will so that they can witness the transformation of shy naturalness into sexual self-actualization.

When the girl becomes a woman and leaves puberty, her virginity gains a unique ravisher. She becomes like a candy : hard on the outside but soft on the interior. Her mind has grown and adapted to the adult world. Her body has fully developed into the complete union of youth and matureness. But her meat is still like that of a tike, untouched. Her hymen is like an anchor, that tiny handhold that she clings to in order to wield her innocence. Her virginity is the batch summit that no man has ever reached. We as a culture expect it to be gone by this time, but the fact that it is still there makes it a true gem. It is a fruit, a"cherry ”, that has fully ripened and is ready to be plucked.

Then when she gets older… it gets variety of creepy. After 35, you form get the feeling that there is something wrong with her. You know that there is some cause why some former man hasn't sealed the good deal, and your instincts tell you to sustain your length. Virginity after that age is just sad.

But I digress ; you've reached the age where your body has ripened while maintaining that cute innocence. Are you gear up to finally become a very char ? To palpate a man make you as his own and peel away your Defense ?"She desperately shook her read/write head, terrified of what he was about to do."That's the spirit !"

Guiding himself in, he buried his putz up to the root in a single thrust of cruelty and strength. baby Olivia cried out, her spokesperson bouncing among the rafter and between the pew. She could feel him, his phallus having pierced her like the gig of Longinus. But it wasn't just her body, she felt as if her very soul had been ripped surface like an orange and something toxic and wickedness was being poured on her disclose interior. She felt dirty, she felt defiled, and she felt broken, crippled almost. Saint Francis Xavier licked his lips to the sound of her howler and the sight of the agony in her eyes, both forcible and emotional. He pulled out of her, the blood of her virginal membrane matching the splatters and stains left behind from the cuts he made earlier.

From there, he turned into a machine, grabbing her by the coxa and using the head of his cock like a jackhammer on the entryway to her womb. Her untouched womanhood was being turned into a receptacle for his abusive driving force ; her body, created by God, turned into the Antichrist's toy. She looked back, staring at the crucifix on the back rampart of the church, upside down from her perspective. She begged and prayed for God to economise her, to protect her from this monster. Her eyes were locked on the statue of Jesus of Nazareth while tears poured from her eyes. The statue remained unmoving, the cast organization proving to be nothing to a greater extent than that.

Xavier's thrusting never slowed or faltered, he never stopped to catch his breath or readapt his stance. Olivia's second unwilling coming came ten minutes after the initial incursion, a fountain of her arousal splashing across Saint Francis Xavier. He didn't stop, he continued barreling into her. If anything, his speed and ferocity increased. His smirk changed into a savage grin, his dentition gleaming in the light of the candles. From there, the head gate opened, with Olivia cumming again and again, having an sexual climax almost every instant. She sobbed harder than ever in her life story, humiliated not just because of what was happening to her, but because of how respectable it felt. Every orgasm was beyond euphoric, shaming every goodness belief in her life.

Xavier soon came, shooting so a great deal semen into her with so a good deal pressure that she almost felt it push her spinal column. He pulled out, admiring his handcraft. Olivia assumed it was over, hoping that he would untie her while trying to ignore the feeling of semen and pussy juice trickling out of her. Once again showing the depth of his cruelty, Xavier forced himself into her asshole, sodomizing her while using his semen as a lubricant. For the umptieth fourth dimension, she screamed, receiving no pleasure from the anal violation. This clock time, instead of holding her by the hip, Xavier squeezed her chest brutally hard, strangling them while he violated her asshole. It continued on like that for hours, Saint Francis Xavier raping her with inhuman stamen, brutalizing every kettle of fish to the stage of bleeding. He would rag her until he came and then move on to another place, switching between her ass and pussy without ever stopping to clean house himself off, save for when he would skull-fuck her.

Two hours before dawn, sister Olivia was at last lowered to the flooring. Her consistence was etched with snub from head to toe and she was wallowing in a pool of blood and semen. Her shabu were broken, her optic space. Xavier stood over her, tired and satisfied. He put his foot on her head, pushing down as if to crush her skull."How does it feel to be broken ? To be powerless ? I'm going to defecate sure you never blank out it."

babe Olivia bolted up in bed, sobbing and drenched in swither. She looked around wildly, expecting to see the Christian church. She was in her bedroom, still wearing the like underwear and nightie she had worn to bed, and there wasn't a unmarried cut on her body. She grasped her crucifix on her bedside table and began feverishly praying, asking God to protect her from whatever evil had evoked the bad nightmare of her life.



For the remainder of the day, baby Olivia was unable to face her class, but it was Xavier she was the most terrorise of. She knew it had just been a bad dream, but it had scared her to the peak where she couldn't look at early students, even classes that Saint Francis Xavier wasn't in. But in accuracy, what had happened to her had been really, and just as he had done to Sophie time and time again, he had simply removed all traces of her torture. The only remainder was that he hadn't erased her storage of the Nox, leaving her with no option but believe that everything had just been a dire nightmare.




Chapter 7



The control board broke free of the cap and struck a student, the corner cutting him from his temple to the middle of his brow and sending blood pouring onto the floor. Everyone in the hallway was either left petrify or frantic, hearing the clangoring and the cry of pain. Thane was there, still taking moving-picture show of the schooltime and now finding something to photograph. This was no coincidence. In the crew, daphne licked her lip in sadistic exaltation. She had dreamed of having baron like this since she was a little female child, the power to cause mayhem and inflict harm. She could feel it bubbling within her, the Antichrist's energy, like a foetus developing in her womb. Down the hall, Thane raised his photographic camera above his promontory and snapped a picture, and once it was developed, he would see a dark design amongst the student, unidentifiable but unmistakable.

This was the second accident today, but the only that the school would pay attention to. It was time to incite on, and she knew exactly who to victimize.



screech and clutching her mitt, Helena fell off her stool with the unanimous stratum watching. She was in interpersonal chemistry, doing a group experiment with the other bookman at the mesa, when the glass beaker atop the hotplate had suddenly shattered and sprayed her paw with seethe pee. With her tegument molting into stinging bleb, Helena tried to look through her weeping as the instructor rushed to her aid. While all the students in class were whispering amongst themselves, Daphne sat in the rachis of the room, trying to apply in her laugh as black sparks crackled around her fingertips.



Nearly delirious from the pain of her suntan and trying not to cry, Helena staggered into the infirmary with the supporter of the instructor. Seeing the state of the student, the school nurse bolted up from her desk.

"baby Ellie, Ms. O'Connor has been badly burned !"the teacher exclaimed.

The nanny hurriedly began applying burn ointment to capital of Montana's hand, making her gasp in relief. Just the feel of the cool cream sent shake up her spine from the decimation of her excruciation, but the pain was still acute. As the nun began wrapping her in bandage, she looked around at the row of seam in the student ward next threshold. There was only one former student there, currently asleep on a cot, but her dormancy face hit Helena like a clout to the gut.

"Sophie !"

Pulling herself away from the nun, she ran through the small auditorium to her unconscious roommate, leaving beyond a trail of ointment-soaked bandages. She grasped Sophie's deal with both of hers, wincing from the unrest of her George Burns."Sophie ! Sophie ! Are you ok ? Wake up !"

Sophie stirred slightly but didn't receptive her heart.

Sister Ellie strode over and gently pulled her away."She just fainted, she'll be fine. We're going to have her sleep here tonight so we can keep an eye on her. get along on, we need to terminate bandaging your hand."

capital of Montana reluctantly let go of Sophie and returned to the office so that her helping hand could be wrapped up. As the end of the cotton channel was taped, the entrance to the infirmary opened and Xavier limped in. Seeing him, capital of Montana's hair nearly stood on end from her cult. Had he done this ? Had he done this to her and Sophie ? !

"Excuse me, nurse ? I slipped down the stairs and I think I sprained my ankle."

"Oh Creator, I got scholar dropping like flies. Both of you pick a bed and get some remainder. Lad, I'll bring you an icepack and something to dull the bother until you can move."

shot him a dirty spirit, capital of Montana strode past Xavier and lied down on the bed next to Sophie's, cradling her burn up hired man. Xavier picked a cot on the other side of the room, and the nurse brought him an icepack and some pills. As soon as she returned to her authority, Xavier snapped his fingerbreadth. A metaphysical Negro drape sealed off the room, separating the nurse's office from the auditorium, then vanished. Xavier had just soundproofed the room, and to anyone looking in, nothing would look out of the ordinary. His movements hidden from the nurse, he climbed out of bed and walked over to Helena, discarding the limp he had used earlier.

"Let me see your injuries."

"Fuck off, I don't want you admiring your handiwork."

Since she had already cursed Sister Olivia, she saw no head in keeping a civil tongue around Xavier. Besides, God would forgive her.

Sighing in pain in the ass, he sat on the boundary of Sophie's bed."You idiot, why do you think I'm here ? I sensed you were hurt and wanted to make sure you were ok."

This was the final matter capital of Montana had expected Xavier to say. This worry, this kindness… Before, he always seemed to be in control of every situation, but now he seemed like he had been completely blindsided. The look on his face and his gentle tone made her flush, regardless of her feelings.

"Well… what about Sophie ? Did you do that as well ?"

"Yeah, but relax. It's just svelte case of Anemia. She'll be right as rain tomorrow. Now let me see your hand."

Normally, Saint Francis Xavier's confession would leave her struggling to turn back her rage, but it was the fact he had been so bluntly honest that left her ferocity ineffectual to ignite. Plus, if it was really nothing more than than anemia, there wasn't much of a full stop of getting mad. There were plentifulness of other ways he could sustain knocked her out. It seemed he just needed her out of the way, rather than hurt. She slowly sat up and held out her hand, letting him gently unravel the bandages that the nurse had just put on her.

"So what exactly happened ? Judging by the way it's wrapped and the ointment applied, I'm guessing that you were burned somehow."

"I was in alchemy and hot beaker broke. Considering all the affair you put me through, I'm surprised you'd charge about something like this."

Having removed the bandages, he gently wiped away the emollient, holding her soft script like an icy rose. Clutching her hand in his loose grasp like a butterfly, he brought it to his mouth and blew on her blistered fingerbreadth as if to warm them with his breath on a cold day. Helena gave a belittled moan of relief as she felt the burns disappear, as if the molted tissue was being blown off like dust and revealing untouched skin underneath.

"Helena, I am a bend man. Your mind, body, and person belong to me and I enjoy making you suffer in my picayune plot. I love that look on your face when you're boundary in ropes, I love the sound you make when I violate you, and I love the heartbreak of guilt and repugnance you feel when I make you do things that you consider sinful."He then kissed her hand and looked into her center, wearing the same sort grinning as when she had jumped off the diving control panel."But of all the terrible thing I've done to you and will retain to do until you finally consecrate in to me, I will never, ever hurt you, aside from maybe the sealing wax I left on you, but that's the exclusion. After all, I still intend to make you my queen and my Bridget, and when I do, I will protect you and score you smile for the rest of your life."

capital of Montana pulled her hired hand away from Xavier's and stood up. The fluttering of her heart scared her More than his speech. She looked at her hand, completely undamaged, with her tegument still as sonant as silk. Should she… thank him ? No, not after everything he had been through.

She looked back at him, using her ire and restlessness to stay the unknown belief now burning within her."What is my task for today ? The bill of fare told me just to wait. What am I supposed to do ?"

Xavier smiled and turned back to Sophie."Well since Sophie will spend the night here, I want you to sleep in her bed tonight."



"So you're Lily ? It's nice to cope with you."

Lily didn't immediately respond, ineffective to face up into Daphne's eyes. She had watched her boyfriend nookie this girl and now she was just talking to her like it was aught ? Not only that, but this woman had stood over her and smiled as Lily licked Xavier's cum out of her pussy.

"Yeah… it's… it's dainty to take on you."

"Xavier talk about you all the time. He says you're the prettiest girl in the world and the perfect girl. You're the most important mortal in the man to him."

The grayback in Lily's tummy loosened. Strange as it was, finding soul who knew about her relationship with Xavier was comforting, and it helped to experience individual else tell her that Xavier loved her.

"Really ? He does ?"

"Of course, and I just think your kinship is the sweet-flavored affair ever. Xavier told me that you were a little tense after our first off meeting and asked me to come and clear the air. How about you and I find someplace private where we can verbalize ?"

Taking Lily by the deal so that she couldn't resist, she pulled her across campus to an isolated pip behind one of the elementary school buildings. Daphne gently pushed her against the ball, tossing her and Lily's book base aside.

"Xavier and I have been fucking for year. You know, just to play around. What you to deliver is grievous, so I'm a petty rum about you."

She started fondling Lily's underdeveloped consistence, making her whine in embarrassment.

"Stop ! What are you doing ? !"

"Come on, haven't you ever wanted to try it with a girl ? Besides, you've already licked Xavier's sperm out of my cunt."

Keeping Lily pressed against the wall, daphne hiked up her dame and jammed her hand into her panties. She cried out as the unknown molested her, inserting her fingerbreadth into the situation only Xavier was allowed to touch. She tried to fight Daphne away, but the upperclassman had a firm clutch on her, plus Lily could not bring up much forte while she was being fingered.

"No ! Please !"

"come on, you know you like it. get hold of it like a secure girl. You are a safe girl, aren't you ?"

Lily stopped resisting, though she looked no less measly. The phrase"good lady friend"had triggered her slavish obedience to Xavier.

‘ Wow, Xavier wasn't kidding when he said he had broken her purport. He's got her trained like Pavlov's dog.'

daphne grabbed Lily's nerve and began kissing her, her fingers pumping back and forth in her pussy while her spit slithered in her mouth. Even after going down on Daphne back in Xavier's room, Lily wanted to cry in revulsion from kissing a young woman. Her body was reacting to the molestation, but she held no attraction to women. Daphne didn't care. Like Xavier, she loved violating girls, and the more unwilling they were, the in effect. Getting more fast-growing, Daphne pulled her fingers out of Lily and jammed them into her oral cavity, forcing them so far into her throat she almost gagged."Yeah, take it, you little slut."

She then stepped back and ripped off her shirt and her bra. Grabbing Lily, she forced her look into her chest, smothering her with her knocker. Once again, Lily tried to push Daphne off her, overwhelmed with the sensory faculty of the overweight water balloons against her face and desperate for air.

"Come on, sucking on them."

Tears streaming down her cheek, Lily wrapped her rim around Daphne's nipples and began pulling on them, all while Daphne slapped and spat on her. Once her breasts were thoroughly painted with Lily's saliva, daphne forced her to the priming and fully uncase. With Lily on her back, Daphne settled on top of her, sitting on her font. Openly crying, Lily began licking Daphne's pussy just like before, while struggling to recover room to take a breath. She hated herself for what she was doing, how this adult female was degrading her. She tried to stay on brave as Daphne ripped off her bird and panties, revealing her fuddled little dent, wet and glistening from being fingered. Daphne began smacking her pussy, making Lily tense up and interbreed her legs from the stinging pain. She was aiming straight for her clit, striking it like she was trying to stamp out a fly.

Loving her restraint over the misfortunate pup, Daphne changed her locating, getting into a Crab walk and rubbing her ass against Lily's fount."seed on, lick my son of a bitch ! drub it !"

Not having the will to fight back, Lily began swirling her clapper around daphne's anus, working it inside her while Daphne played with herself. She could barely breathe, but at this dot, she wouldn't mind dying. After a minute, daphne got up off Lily. Without her victim observation, she used the powers Xavier had given her to happen a large strap-on dildo. Securing herself in the harness, she flipped Lily onto her stomach and got on top of her."Let's see how well you can accept a cock."

Lily murmured a small-scale plea for mercy and then screamed as Daphne forced the dildo into her SOB without any sort of lubrication. Daphne pushed it in all the way and then lifted herself up. Pushing Lily's facial expression into the flat coat, she began heaving her body and dropping it, fucking her asshole with obvious cruelty. Lily whined with each brutal thrust, her crying blurring her vision and her back talk filled with the discernment of dirt and grass. Over and over again, her small body shook with each insertion of the toy, making her smell like her asshole was going to tear open. But beyond the pain, it was humiliating, getting brutally sodomized while face down in the soil. She didn't roll in the hay how tenacious daphne raped her, it felt the like hours listening to her laugh in her ear while she herself cried in annoyance, but she eventually got up, removed the strap-on, and forced it into Lily's mouth like a pacifier.

"Wow, you really are a sound miss. I wish you and Xavier a farsighted and happy life together."

Giggling sadistically, daphne got dressed and left Lily there, curled up in the foetal position with the dildo still in her mouth and her anus bleeding. Crossing the campus, Daphne was spun around as Xavier angrily grabbed her wrist and pulled her aside, just as she had done to Lily.

"What is it ? What did I do ? If this is about that young lady, you said I could play with her !"

Xavier glared at her, a feeling of anger on his font that she never wanted to see again."You and Helena have alchemy together. Did you cause that burn on her hired man ?"

The doubt made Daphne give a double yield."O'Connor ? What does that bitch have to do with this ?"

"resolution the query !"

"Yes ! I made the beaker shatter ! You told me to cause worry, so I thought I'd give her what she had coming !"

"Don't you dare hurt her again ! Ever !"

daphne's face became red with ira."Why ? ! Why would you give care about that stuck-up psycho ?"

"Because I have chosen her to be my king when I take over this world ! She is the one I will take my married woman and you will bow to her when that day comes !"

Forgetting who she was talking to, Daphne exploded."Never ! I'll never bow to her and I'll never accept her ! This is horseshit ! You can't just—"

Saint Francis Xavier swung his arm and sent four chain bursting from the priming coat, made of the Lapplander ethereal Light Within as her collar. Securing themselves to that shackle, they pulled her to her knees.

"I think you and I need to elucidate our human relationship. You are not my partner or my equal. You are my retainer and I am your master. You don't get a say in what I do and you don't get to interview me. Whether you like it or not, Helena will be my queen and you will obey her just as you obey me. If I tell you to you to kiss her pes, you will do it like it's your best-loved affair in the world. Understood ?"Daphne simply glared at him."Understood ?"he asked again, his face inch from hers with his center literally burning.

"Yes, Master."



Helena stared at Sophie's empty bed like it was a dead animal on the face of the road. The sheets and blankets had all been changed since the last clock time Xavier had been there, but still… a lot of thing had happened in this bed, none of them dear. But this was the sluttish trial Xavier had given her. She didn't have to do anything but lie down and sleep. Sighing in resignation, she removed her skirt and blouse and climbed into bed. The dorm elbow room at this school were perfectly symmetrical, so it felt a little strange to be sleeping on the other English of the room with the wall to her right. The bed smelled like Sophie, but capital of Montana didn't mind.

The lights turned off and her alarm clock set, Helena lay on her back and waited for sleep to come. Easier said than done. Her mind refused to get back and her body would not relax. She stared at the ceiling, telling herself again and again that this was the same view Sophie had whenever Xavier raped her. Her booster would attend up and cry, seeing that exact same subdivision of plaster tiles while the Antichrist had his way with her. What had she thought about ? What were the idea and feeling rushing through her brain during those dreadful dark ?

She knew exactly why Xavier was making her do this : he wanted to earn her curious as to what Sophie had gone through, but she couldn't help but follow with his plan. Just like when she had watched that porno, she wondered what it had felt like to have sex, even if Xavier's way with Sophie had been violent and horrific. Taking away all the bad stuff, all the concern and pain from being violated, what did it sense like when Sophie had intercourse with Xavier ? If Sophie had been willing or even eager let Xavier use her body, what would it feel like ?

‘ Oh God, please don't let Saint Francis Xavier come here tonight. That's what he's going to do, isn't it ? He's going to demonstrate me what Sophie experienced by doing the exact same affair to me !'

She could already picture it, him holding himself over her, that sadistic smirk of subjugation on his fount. She swung her arm at the hollow blank he would have occupied, dispelling the figment of her imaging like it was a quilt of smoke. She suddenly stopped, her consistence so still it was as if she had been flash-frozen. She was staring at her deal, outstretched before her and wrapped up. Since everyone knew she had been burned and she couldn't simply say that the Antichrist had healed her, she would take in to sustain it bandaged it for a while, simply for appearing. What he had told her in the infirmary was ringing in her judgement like church bells.

‘ He's done a lot of bad things to me, but it's true that he's never actually suffer me, aside from maybe that brand collar. Sophie always screamed in torture when Xavier used his fire on her, but they weren't painful at all to me. Did he do that on determination to protect me ? He said that he would never, ever smart me. That's right, he won't just rape me like he did to Sophie. He wants to win my heart and have me give him my virginity willingly. I will never love a twine monster like him, no matter what… but at to the lowest degree I can say that he could be worse.'

yawning, she tightened the cover around herself and rolled onto her slope, her workforce to her lips as if in prayer, at last falling asleep to the smell of the bandages.



baby Olivia kneeled at her bed, praying for God to protect her from the horrible nightmare she had suffered the Nox before. ambition or not, she didn't know if she could survive being raped like that again. Hopefully, after a good Night's nap, she would recover her heart and put her scholar back in their place. Certain she had secured her soul against evil, she climbed into bed and went to catch some Z's. Xavier soon retrieved her for another Nox of fun.



Helena zoomed through the H2O of the school day consortium, passing by her fellow student like they were domestic dog swimming for the outset time. Her task for the day was to watch another porno and masturbate to it. She wasn't looking forward to it, but she had to prompt herself that it could always be risky. Besides, unlike the roach, that DVD musician stashed in her Quran bag wasn't hindering her bm in the pool. She had managed to convince the omnibus that swimming wouldn't agitate her"wounded"script, and her tan or emollient wouldn't contaminate the urine. Having slept well through the Night and now enjoying one of her favorite hobbyhorse, she at last felt like things were right in the world.

Two rows down, Daphne was watching her with truly ineffable rage. Of all people, why did Xavier have to cull Helena to be his queen ? ! ‘ She doesn't deserve it, that uptight gripe ! He already fucked me and gave me his power ! I should be the one he marries ! Me ! ME ! I should be his queen ! That partisan twat should just drop dead !'



The year soon ended, with all of the little girl herding back to the locker elbow room to shower off and get dressed. daphne was the last to go in, her eyes lit with bloodlust. All of the former bookman had already left, but with only a study hall after this, Helena was allowing herself to savour the shower and thoroughly moisten off the chlorine.

"Hey !"

Helena turned around and Daphne slammed her against the wall, squeezing her white meat brutally hard. She cried out in annoyance and tried to fight Daphne off her, both young woman naked.

"Ah ! What the hell are you doing ? !"

"stop away from Saint Francis Xavier, you bitch ! He's mine !"

Helena's heart widened."What did you just say ?"

"I'm going to be his queen, not you ! I'll show you what happens when you get in my way ! If Xavier hasn't popped your cherry, I'll rift you in for him !"

Daphne began working her fingerbreadth into capital of Montana, and at that bit, every cell in her body seemed to line up, making her spirit like she was made of Kevlar.

"Don't you dare touch me ! Don't you ever allude me !"

pulling back her arm, she punched daphne in the face as hard as she could, sending her sprawling back with a broken olfactory organ. Pushing off against the wall, Helena hurled herself at her long-time nemesis and began beating her wildly with her fists. Hitting the opposing wall of the shower bath room, Daphne ducked to the side of meat to dodge Helena's lick.

capital of Montana stood over her, cracking her brass knucks."Of all the girlfriend in this school to find fault a competitiveness with, you picked the haywire one."

Daphne's eyes became shameful with unholy energy."right wing back at you."

She tackled capital of Montana, knocking her to the slippery ground and sitting on top of her. Helena shifted her head to the side, barely dodging a downwards poke. Daphne's fist smashed the concrete floor like it was Styrofoam.

‘ Oh my god, she's not human ! What did Xavier do to make her like this ? !'

Grabbing her arm, capital of Montana pushed against Daphne's articulatio cubiti to force her to range off to the side. Helena got to her foundation and spun around on the slick floor to deliver a recoil to daphne's jaw, sending her staggering out of the shower and crashing one of the Bench. She stood up, her torso rippling as the dark power began to destabilise from her craze. Her look contorted, her tooth becoming like phonograph needle and her impertinence disappearance. She sent her arm rocketing towards Helena, the limb stretching like India rubber with claws at the tip of her fingers. Helena ducked out of the way, gaining a boastfully cut across the shoulder but otherwise avoiding damage.

With ancestry running down her pectus, she bolted up and charged towards daphne. Any pattern human would run or be perfectly petrified, but Helena was too pissed off to sense anything but the ravenous desire to pose her opponent. She had known since the night Xavier enslaved her that she would have to fight a battle like this someday, so there was no dot in feeling fright. Her mind had become as focused as a laser, blocking out the pain in her shoulder and the absence of her clothes. She saw only openings in Daphne's transforming body and variables in the footlocker room : slippery floor, severe locker, and benches occupying space.

"You're not Saint Francis Xavier, but you'll do ! I'll purge this school of your unholy existence !"

She sent her fist rocketing towards daphne and struck her in the eye.

The mutating girl shook off the trauma."I'LL killing YOU, YOU dullard snatch !"

Grabbing Helena by the arm, she picked her up and tossed her at the nearby row of sinks. Helena nearly blacked out from the shock and could feel the mirrors shattering against her back. Daphne charged and delivered a wall-crunching punch, but avoiding the strike, Helena lashed out and slammed a fistful of mirror fragment into Daphne's face, blinding her in one eye. Staggering back, Daphne gave an cold cry of pain in the neck, and taking advantage of the gap, Helena unleashed another barrage of clout, striking Daphne over and over again with her bleeding fists.

After the sixth punch, Daphne swung her arm and delivered five cutting across Helena's stomach, almost deep enough to rip open her trunk cavity. This was an accidental injury that Helena could not ignore, and distracted by the pain in the ass, she could not turn back daphne from again grabbing her and hurling her across the elbow room, this clip into a row of footlocker. The metal crumpled easily against her body, but Helena was spitting up blood when she hit the undercoat. One of the lockers opened up and something fell out, landing on her back and making her wince in pain. wait, it was a floor hockey club !

look her arcsecond wind coming on, Helena got to her feet with the golf club in her helping hand. daphne lunged with a monstrous belly laugh, but Helena knocked aside her mutating arm and struck her upside the mind with the club, hitting her so hard that the snare end broke off. Undeterred, capital of Montana spun the weaken end around in her helping hand and stabbed Daphne in the side of the cervix with the bump end. A kick to the tum sent the she-beast backrest, but the wounds inflicted were meaning lupus erythematosus and less with each passing second as the duskiness within her keep on to twist her physical structure into an abomination.

Screaming like a banshee, Daphne leapt across the room towards capital of Montana, but before she could bear her bang, an invisible magnate slammed her against the wall with enough force to suppress half her skeleton. Xavier was standing in the doorway of the locker way, his coat now a mantle of black flames surging around him.

"DAPHNE !"he snarled.

He strode over to her, the pathetic retch raising a hand and begging him to mercy. His eyes dark with cruelty, he kicked her arm aside and began stomping on her."How daring you lay so much as a finger on her ? ! I warned you ! I told you what she meant to me ! A rabid beef like you isn't worthy to be my servant !"

The black flame around him then vanished as Helena tackled him, clutching his arm for documentation while in her injured state."No ! Don't kill her !"

He looked down at her, confused."After what she did to you ? I can't allow anyone who would hurt you to live."

weeping were streaming down her bloodied side."She was always mean, but you're the one who made her into a monster !"

Saint Francis Xavier sighed."As you wish."

He snapped his finger's breadth and Daphne's consistency began to give back to normal, the dark big businessman he had given her stabilizing while he healed her body. He then turned to Helena."I swear to you, I never wanted this to bump. I never wanted you to be harmed."

She glared at him with indescribable fury."Yeah, well, even you can't always get what you want, especially when you pull shit like this !"



Swallowing her pride, Helena reluctantly allowed Saint Francis Xavier to cure her, at which gunpoint, she got garbed and left the locker room without so much as a glance or watchword to him. Having told Helena he wouldn't kill Daphne, he gave her one last chance and allowed her to summarize being his retainer. For the next few solar day, affair continued on like this. Daphne continued on causing worry around the school and around Thane, and Helena performed every trial run Saint Francis Xavier assigned her, though he did give her the gift of space.



Standing at his desk in his dormitory room, Thane looked through the 100 of photograph he had taken, collecting all of the guessing with the dark trope. Ever since he had started photographing the school, a lot of stroke had been occurring, and there was plenty of variableness among the victims and the emplacement. One aurora, an elementary school student could accidentally fall back a finger to the paper cutter, and in that same good afternoon, a college student could fall off a ladder in the university depository library. The largest share of victims was the senior high school students, and those accidents often occurred when he was nearby.

‘ I can't accept this as coincidence. This being must be aware that I am looking for it and is trying to make me chase it. But if I wonder if they know how close they've allowed me to get.'

He again looked through the photographs of the entity. Since every picture only displayed a dim figure, Thane had begun trying to hire genial photo of every scene before taking the actual photograph. With all the pictures he took and the problem of crowd, it was future to inconceivable to remember case-by-case faces, but one thing he had at least accomplished was memorizing the uniforms. He remembered there being a female educatee standing in the position of the gloomy flesh every time he took a mental picture, and even with the large margin for mistake considering the holes in his memory, he was certain the chassis was a girl.

But there was a problem with that. half of the accidents occurred between course, when the hallways of every building were flooded with educatee. The other one-half occurred randomly throughout the day, during division. He was sealed that this entity was masquerading as a distaff student, but what if it wasn't a student actually enrolled ? He had originally assumed it to be some sort of human that was causing it because of how well the evil was contained and hidden, but it could also be some kind of demonic entity, new to him or at the very least more mighty than the kind he regularly dealt with, and could disguise itself as a scholar however it wanted like a chameleon.

If this was avowedly, then it meant hassle. If the perpetrator weren't a substantial scholar, but merely a wolf in sheep's clothing hiding amongst the herd, then it would be all the more difficult to hound it down. It wouldn't have an identity that could be discovered and lead to its finding. But there was another possibility. Just because classes were in progress didn't mean students were chained to their desks. In just the richly school buildings alone, there could be a hundred scholarly person in the residence for can pause or trips to the hospital, not to mention nonattender who skipped course of instruction all together.

He turned to a manila gasbag beside him, given to him by don Hauser. It contained the attendance records for the last several days. Looking through it, he saw a name that caught his eye. She had been missing or late quite often lately, many times when an accident took place, and had even been the victim at one point, though for all he knew, she could have done it to exclude herself from suspicion.

"Hmmm, Helena O'Connor. I think it's metre for you to have a talk of the town with a few teachers."



"Helena, are you ok ? You look really sick."
The enquiry was asked by one of her friend in the cafeteria during breakfast the next morning. Helena was blushing, her respiration was promptly, and her movements were slower than common."Yeah, I'm fine."
The rationality for her condition was the run of the day that Xavier had set up for her. Her pantie had some kind of curse on them that would make them vibrate with extreme intensity against her pussy, making her spirit like she had a silenced phone hidden in her underwear and it was being called every hour. This continuous tickle was driving her nutcase, making her wish well she could touch herself and break that orgasmic threshold. Every meter she tried, her cotton fiber panty would become like sword, keeping her fingers out as if she were wearing a chastity rap. The stimulation was torturesome, too strong for her to simply dismiss, but too decrepit to trigger the coming she so desperately wanted.
‘ I'd give my rectify manus to be able to masturbate right now. Oh God, what the hell is ill-timed with me ? !'

She looked around and spotted Daphne a few board away. The two fair sex made eye impinging and capital of Montana could sense the bloodlust, as well as the fright. If she did anything to capital of Montana, anything at all, Xavier would kill her very slowly. capital of Montana also liked to think that she had shown Daphne that even without some sinful powers, she was not somebody who could be killed easily.



"Helena O'Connor, please come to the Disciplinary Committee office. Helena O'Connor, please come to the Disciplinary Committee office."
The proclamation of the intercom shook her from her dazed attempt to sharpen. She was sitting in math course, not even bothering to pay tending to the teacher, but working to just keep from losing her mind to the haunting stimulant of her vagina. She didn't know if it was really her panties vibrating or something else, but if it continued on any longer, she was going to pass out.

‘ Goddammit, what now ?'

Grumbling in annoyance, she got up from her ass and walked to the door, and as she passed him, she made eye middleman with Saint Francis Xavier. It was one of the grade they shared. She could see a clear response in him, just from looking in his eyes. He didn't appear alarmed or even worried, but he was intrigued. He knew something was going on and he was eager to see what would fall out. She could take heed him talking to her, as if he was inside her skull. It was the collar, connecting them.

‘ Don't stray too far.'

sense of hearing him mouth to her in this manner did not surprise her. After the things she had seen and experienced, she just considered it another aspect of this rivalry.



The walk to the disciplinary office was long and difficult. Helena's wooden leg felt like jelly, and she had to hold on at the bathroom to houseclean herself from the…"overflow"… of her unwanted arousal. She wondered what it was that the Disciplinary committee wanted with her. She hadn't caused any trouble in the past few Clarence Day, not since her fighting with Daphne. Xavier had fixed up everything in the cabinet room, so she was indisputable it wasn't about that. Was it because she still hadn't settled affair with sis Olivia ? Was she going to be suspended or even expelled ? But then… why wasn't Xavier called in with her ?

She soon arrived and in the waiting area sat Thane. He was staring at her intently, having known that there was something about her from the moment she entered the room. The receptionist directed her to the merging room. Before stepping inside, she took a deep breath and put all of her effort into ignoring the vibrating sensation between her legs and maintaining her composure. Inside, she found Padre Brian, Father Hauser, and a priest she didn't recognize. The furniture had all been removed but a single chair, set out for her.

"Uh, what's going on here ?"

"Helena, thank you for coming. Please, take a seat."

She shot Hauser a wary glance."I think I'll stand."

Father Brian stepped forward."Helena, we know things have been hard for you lately. First there was the terrible incident with those boys, then your failing health, that incident with baby Olivia, and now that burn. We wanted to tell you that you aren't in trouble and that you can ask us for assistant whenever you need it."

The stranger priest extended his hired hand with a smile. He wore a stole of the clergy."Ms. O'Connor, I'm Bishop Nelson from the Vatican Palace, and Father Brian asked me to come. He thought that a chemical group supplication would assist you raise your liquor and remind you that you have God's protection."

‘ Do they know ? Have they figured it out ?'“ Ok, if you want to."

The three priests stood around her and Bishop Viscount Nelson began to verbalize with Hauser and Brian repeating him."Almighty God, from the teemingness of your mercy, enrich your servants and safeguard them. Strengthened by your blessing, may they always be grateful to you and consecrate you with unending joy. We ask this through Christ our Lord."

capital of Montana stood between them, unsure of what she was supposed to do. For the beginning prison term, she wished her collar would set off. She needed something, anything, anything that they would notice. If they could bring up some kind of reaction from her collar, then they would eff she needed real help.

"Lord, let the effect of your blessing remain with your congregation people to pass them new life and enduringness of spirit so that the office of your honey will enable them to accomplish what is correct and good. We ask this through Good Shepherd our Lord."

They continued to pray, their voices growing in volume. capital of Montana couldn't smell anything as she listened to them. There was no uplifting sentiency or ghostlike release. She felt no different from before entering the room.

"Maker, may the blessing they recollective for be the persuasiveness of your close people, so that they will never be in conflict with your will. May your blessing always propel them to give thanks for your favor. We ask this through Christ our Lord."

‘ God, please rescue me from this wickedness. Protect me from the son of the fallen one and kick in me the strong point to eradicate his evil from this public,'She thought this to herself desperately, putting all her effort into reinforcing her religion. It was the solely thing she could do to fight back against the uncertainty slowly seeping into her mind.

"Bless your hoi polloi, Lord, who wait for the gift of your compassion. cede that what they desire by your intake they may receive through your goodness. We ask this through Jesus our Lord."

This wasn't working. Why wasn't this working ? Was it because she was not in a church ? No, Saint Francis Xavier had proven that his might worked even in the business firm of God. Did she need someone eminent in the church service ? The pope himself ? Or was it possible that no human could help her ?

"Lord, we, your people, pray for the gift of your holy blessing to ward off every harm and to make for to fulfillment every right desire."

wait, she could feel something. Her collar was beginning to warm up around her throat. Was it seeable ? Would they see it ? She wanted to address out and monish them, but she was left mute.

"May God, who is blessed above all, hallow us in all things through messiah, so that whatever happens in our lives will work together for our good. We ask this through Christ our Lord. Amen."

In the waiting orbit, Thane struggled to place upright up, feeling like he had just been stabbed through the nerve with an icicle. Something was there, dark than anything he had ever encountered. capital of Montana too realized that something was in that elbow room with them. Time seemed to have stopped, the three priest frozen in position. She could find him behind her, Xavier, but he was different from before. The air in the room pulsed from the stretch of two great flank. He lowered his face and sniffed her head the way an animal would, lifting up half of her hair from the muscular inhale. She was standing in his shadow, eclipsed, her heart beating wildly in her thorax. A hand closed around her arm, massive and scaled, but also docile with its movements. His former hand gently wrapped around her throat with nipper being dragged across her skin, sharper than razors but not leaving even the smallest prick. He wasn't holding her neck to strangle her ; it was more like he had just given her a necklace and was admiring the way it looked on her.

She felt his breath on her ear as he bent down to whisper something."My queen…"

He disappeared and prison term continued, the three non-Christian priest ending their prayer. They looked at her, startled by the look of brat on her human face. She was practically shivering."Sorry, but I have to go."

turn around, she rushed out of the meeting room. Passing through the waiting orbit, she glanced at Thane. The look on his side told her everything. He could see it now without the camera, the massive shadow burning behind her, the two red eyes gleaming within the duskiness, and the hefty hand resting on her shoulder. The moment she was gone, he staggered into the meeting room.

"So ? What did you sense ? Is she the one ?"Fatherhood Brian asked.

Thane swallowed the swelling in his throat."We're out of our league."



Helena lay in bed, waiting for quietus to come but knowing it wouldn't. It was almost midnight and the vibe between her legs had not stopped. Was Xavier punishing her ? Was she going to have to go the whole nighttime with her snatch basting itself ? She just wished she could touch herself, insert her fingers and break through the terminal barrier holding her backbone from cumming. She was clawing at her step-in, but she might as well have been trying to scratch through steel. Finally, when 12:00 flashed across her clock, it stopped. She took a deep, shuddering intimation, almost crying in reliever. Finally she could—

A deal closed around her wrist, as in the blink of an eye, Saint Francis Xavier appeared in her bed. He was beneath the covert with her, naked with his organic structure pressed to hers. She could feel his put up humanness pressed to her keister and she wanted to scream in revulsion.

"I couldn't supporter but want to see you. It's been too long since we spent any time together."

"Get away from me ! Don't tactile sensation me !"

For several second, she pushed against him, trying to break-dance dislodge of his grip, but his hold on her was like a calamari's. She screamed and fought against him, hoping that somebody would see and get help, but Sophie never even woke up. As usual, Saint Francis Xavier was using his powers to see to it the motion of strait. Against all her concern and her rage, her consistency was weakly from the tiring day and her strength at terminal left her. Panting and drenched in sweat, she tried to prevail in her weeping while Xavier kissed her shoulder and neck, holding her in the spoon position.

"I'm grave, I wanted to come see you. After the day you had, I knew you were do-or-die to have an orgasm, so I thought I would get along and get duty as your master."

He slid his manpower into her panty and began massaging her oiled labia, now sore beyond standard. capital of Montana again tried to bankrupt disengage, screaming at the top of her lungs, but in secondment, she was again still. She could only cry silently as he ran his fingers through her. She was so abject that she couldn't even distinguish it, physically ill with foiling, humiliation, anger, and impuissance. But what infuriated her more than anything was how safe it felt, every stroke of his fingers feeling like the shaft of light of the springtime sun after a brutal winter. Her eat up physical structure was submitting to him, her psyche ineffective to traverse the delight he was invoking. In the darkness, she blushed from his touch, her weeping snuff becoming pants of arousal. In the munition of the man she loathed more than anyone on Earth, her back pressed against his breast, she found herself feeling joy, not just physical, but dare she say… emotional. After a minute, Xavier stopped, and capital of Montana had to bite her tongue to stop herself from begging him to hold open going.

"Can you feel it ? The walking on air permeating your flesh ? Your consistency is learning to require joy from the touch of its master."

"You're not my maestro, you'll never be my lord !"

"Why do you continue to oppose against me ? I am the only confessedly force in this human beings. Let me be the anchor for your soul. Admit your feelings and this nightmare will end. The pain you feel is brought on by your refusal to accept the pleasure you feel."

"What happened in the Disciplinary Committee post ? They were trying to bless me, why didn't it mould ?"

"Oh please, you really thought three foolish men could break our bond ? Your Scripture is null to a greater extent than ancient stories rewritten over and over, your crosses are monitor of Christ's torture and death at the hands of mankind, your"holy piddle"is somebody men claiming to be blessed with the power of God, your supplication of sacrament are less effective than the bank note in luck cookies, and your church are shacks of wasted money where mass congregate like phony. God isn't here. There is no sanctum mogul in this city or this world. The men you look up to, the men you idolize, they are null to a greater extent than fools deluded into believing they have been blessed with the big businessman of the almighty.

Haven't you realized by now that your trust is just a mockery of itself ? Even your sanctified Relics are self-defeating. The Lance of Longinus, the Shroud of Turin, the Nails of Helena, the True crossbreeding, the Crown of spine, and the Holy Grail are all just memento of your Jesus of Nazareth's wretched portion. No one in the Earth can facilitate you and God isn't listening to your prayers."

"Even if you say that, I still have my faith."

Xavier resumed fingering her, and it only took half a minute for her orgasm. She was mute as the euphoria flooded her, hating herself for cumming by his hand. He was the Antichrist, her foeman, and he had just taken advantage of her muliebrity and used her own body against her.

"I'll never let you bring out me."

"Oh, my darling ice queen, I don't have to bankrupt you…"He pulled his fingers free and then jammed them in her mouth, forcing her to savour her own feminine essence."You're already melting."





Chapter 8



As usual, Helena's friends all noted the sudden lack of vitality on her font. She had been very well recently, but today, it was superfluity that had left her despondent. The premature night, Saint Francis Xavier had snuck into her elbow room and molested her until she climaxed. The man she hated more than anything else on the satellite had invoked indescribable delight in her. Even unsound was when he jammed his fingers in her mouth, forcing her to try out her feminine essence. It made her require to throw away up in horror, not from the taste, but from the sinful knowledge of what is was. But she was also terrified, as the card Saint Francis Xavier had left her was blank. Was there no tryout for her today ? If there wasn't, did that mean he was going to resume raping Sophie at dark ? She looked at her friend, terrified of what new revulsion awaited her.



Sophie's footsteps were the only sound in the hall. She was on her way to category, third catamenia. She was in full spirits, and aside from her worrying about capital of Montana and her stagnant humor, all was right with the world. No warning was given and no presence was sensed when the bridge player grabbed her face and the arm wrapped around her shank. It took her a mo to actually action what was going on, at which dot she screamed as tawdry as she could through the stranger's hand.

"Oh settle down, you act like this is the world-class time I ever had my way with you. Time for the next level of the game."

She didn't recognize the articulation speaking in her ear. It was deep and dry, yet somehow diffused like a rustling. The phonation was almost cold and it made her smell like her skeletal system was made of ice. Who the perdition was holding her ? The answer came with a haste of searing pain, as if her neck opening was being sprayed with a torch. From that branding, a tempest of computer memory overtook her, with hours of revulsion being snatched from the darkness and played out for her in a single minute. All the times she had been raped, she was now remembering, and the face of her tormenter was now clear as day.

Xavier dropped to her the trading floor with the rope of sixer smoldering on the face of her neck where he had licked her. Sophie vomited on the ecru tile, purging herself of her half-eaten breakfast. It was all she could do as her soul was stabbed with the returning memories of her ongoing intimate assault. The ethereal leash now spinning around her neck had broken the seal on her mind, and with it, her body regained all of the scars from Xavier's torture that he had mended.

He pulled on her leash, dragging her over to him."I told you before that you are cypher but my cum dumpster, a toy for me to use and abuse as much as I want. You need to fulfil your role."

He snapped his fingers, wrapping the two of them in a shroud of darkness and teleporting them to Sophie's elbow room. Once there, he threw her on the bed and began tearing away at her dress. Sophie struggled against him, her face buried in her pillow as it had been time and time again when he assaulted her.

"No ! Please ! Please don't rape me !"

He laughed and handcuffed her to the headboard, finishing by tearing away the concluding of her clothes and leaving her naked. He undressed and climbed on top of her, reaching under to nip her breasts until she screamed."Strange, isn't it ? To finally do this in the daylight ? Now I can see the look of terror in your center with consummate pellucidity. If I remember correctly, it was sodomy that made you cum the hardest."

He moved his attending from her breasts and began striking her ass until handprints had been worn into her lily-white skin. Sophie cried and begged him to be merciful, but her lachrymose pleading just excited Xavier further. No topic how flashy she screamed, her intelligence and the phone of him smacking her would never be heard. Wanting to drive her even sick, Xavier wetted his finger in her mouthpiece and used her saliva as lubricant, pushing them into her arse. She cried out as his fingers penetrated her, slipping through her defenses no matter how hard she clenched. This was not the first time he had violated her anally ; she knew that now, but the fact that he was capable to do it to her made her sob in shame.

"My, my, you're so tight. It seems I'll have to start training you to be a goodness ass striver. Let's see how many fingerbreadth I can get in."

One at a time, he slipped in the digit while thrusting with his arm, trying to pull them in as deep as he could. Sophie shrieked, continuing to beg him to contain. Her pleading simply convinced him to proceed going and to fit in Sir Thomas More digit. He was unable to go in preceding his brass knuckles, but he was able to force in all five fingers and slide them inside her easily. She put all of her intensity into her rectal brawniness, clenching to try and go on him out, but no amount of force could stop over him. He waited for her to fag out herself out, her asshole finally becoming informal and awaiting what was to come. Just as he had done to Helena the night before, he jammed his fingers into her sass, forcing her to taste the over-the-top flavor of her ass.

"Don't trouble, I know that you were on your way to class. I'll have this quick. You can just shrug off being late."

dissemination her ass nerve, he spat onto her anus and slowly forced his cock in. Sophie was sobbing uncontrollably, writhing in desperation to lessen the botheration of being sodomized.

Xavier buried himself in to the base, taking a moment to admire the slew of his victim's asshole forming a complete seal around his humanness."I don't know why you insist on crying, this isn't the low time I've used your back door."

He leaned over, holding himself up with his weaponry as if doing pushups. Bobbing his lower body, he began slamming himself into her without mercy, punishing her asshole with his cock, each thrust being delivered with his full-of-the-moon weight. Sophie continued to cry and yell in pain, feeling like she was going to get ripped give any second. She was remembering the other times he had sodomized her like this, the sealed memory board overlapping and perfectly replicating the awful sensations Xavier was inflicting on her. Every clip he drove into her, she could experience a pulse ripple through her pelvic neighborhood, with undeniable joy beginning to bubble within her. This anal rape was agony, but it was invoking a physiological chemical reaction in her, one that refused to obey her will and vanish.

Xavier could sense it and pulled her hair."Go ahead and cum. You love getting raped in your shit, don't you ?"

"No ! No ! please discontinue !"

"Not until you cum. You can't leave until you have an orgasm ! Come on, say it !"

Whether it was the issue of his world power or just some twisted reaction to her situation, the floodgates opened for Sophie after just a couple hour. She screamed into her pillow, soaking it with her tears of mortification."Oh God ! I'm cumming ! I'm cumming from my ass !"

Xavier grinned as she felt her constrain down on his pecker, refusing to let him go. Her whole body was trembling as an almost masochistic euphoria was flushed through her arrangement. No longer needing to control back, Xavier emptied himself into her, filling her shit with seed. He pulled out of her and replaced his cock with a butt plug, the toy seemingly appearing in his hand out of slim down air.

"There, now it won't leak out of you. Don't even try to pull that out, only your original can remove it. Do you understand ? Answer, slave !"

Her cheek puffy and red from crying, Sophie nodded."I understand."

Xavier snapped his digit and they were teleported back to the hallway, their clothes returning to their organic structure. Sophie had a beat look her in her eyes, with her anus sore from the rape and the sex toy still inside her.

"From this distributor point forward, weigh yourself my property. I can do whatever I want to you and you'll never get to say no. I suggest you do everything you can to avoid raising suspicions, because if anyone should get a line about me, I will obliterate them, I'll make you watch, and then I will violate you on top of their butcher carcass. Your instructor, your protagonist, your family… I'll slaughter them in front of you and then make them up for our dinner. Do you understand ?"Sophie nodded, unable to reckon him in the eye or even speak."proficient, then get to form, because if you aren't there in five instant, I'll have to torture you."

She slowly got to her base and began to hitch away. Xavier stormed over and grabbed her breast from behind, squeezing it with cruel specialty and making her cry out."You forgot to bow, a striver is supposed to bow when leaving their master."



Sophie stepped into course, Social subject area with Sister Olivia. She didn't have this family with Helena or Xavier, a small blessing in this new Hell she found herself in. There was no doubt that capital of Montana would be able-bodied to see that something wasn't rightfulness, and if she started asking interrogative sentence, it would put her in peril. Normally, being latterly would terrify Sophie, as Sister Olivia would outfox any truants in nominal head of the class. However, neither woman was in their common United States Department of State of mind.

While Sophie was trying to recoup from the rape just minutes ago, Sister Olivia was traumatized by her continuing"nightmare ”. It felt so very, she almost thought that she was still dreaming, as the want of the accidental injury inflicted on her made her almost interrogative reality.



The late Night :

Sister Olivia hung in the university Christian church, her wrist joint bound above her head and with a gag in her mouth. She was sobbing as Xavier threw the needle, striking one of the nonaged pressure distributor point in the side of her thigh. He walked in set around her, creating needles out of thin air and throwing them with pinpoint truth. They were striking boldness and pressure points and sending currents of electrical energy through her body. It was a form of stylostixis, but with the maximum sum of money of pain being inflicted. He had paid excess care to her erogenous zone, with her labia and breasts looking like the back of a hedgehog and a single long needle going through her nipples.

"Amazing, isn't it ? acupuncture has always fascinated me, especially its power to alleviate suffering. Do you know how it works ? The acerate leaf used are so narrow, that when they are inserted, you feel almost no pain sensation, or even the needles at all. However, the damage they inflict to the trunk is just enough for the release of endorphins, especially when they are used on the right places.

Now watch this. Nothing up my sleeves…"He balled his hired man into a clenched fist and blew into one slope, and from the other, a bundle of phonograph needle slid out."Magic !"

Moving behind her, he smiled and threw the tiny pikes, using his top executive to guide them and strike all of the boldness clump in her rachis. He snapped his fingerbreadth and a crippling bolt of lightning of electricity cracked through the phonograph needle, shocking her with the magnate of a cattle goading and making her scream until her phonation was hoarse.

"good, now lets see how well I can insert them under the skin…"



When lunch arrived, Sophie did her considerably to put on a brave face and hide her pain from her acquaintance. She couldn't let them find out about what Xavier had done to her or else he would kill them. It was unmanageable for her to sit down at the table with her friends, or anywhere for that matter, considering she still had the butt plug inside her. She set her tray down and tried to sit, making an unintended wince.

The flick caught Helena's gaze."Sophie, are you ok ?"

She looked at her friend, wishing to yell what was happening and beg her for supporter, but she had to put on a smile and ignore her painful sensation."Yeah… I just… I just pulled something in gym class."

The way she spoke and the way she smiled, both with heartsick eyes, set of alarm clock in Helena's psyche.



Once lunch came to an end, all the students stacked up their trays on board by the exits and swarmed out for their future course. In the horde was Thane, his mind on other matter. He didn't know what he was supposed to do. The priests had blessed capital of Montana but null had happened because of it. The only affair they had succeeded in doing was finding out that whatever was haunting her was beyond their power to fight.

He came to a stop, stock-still with a feeling of dread almost beyond his body's power to bear. Everyone around him was shoving to get out, but someone had just passed by him, and that mien was enough to go out his pith struggling to mystify. It was just like before, when Helena had left the Disciplinary Committee's role and he saw that shadow, and even before, back when he had that visual sense in the kitchen. His eubstance was screaming at him to run, telling him that he was a hair's breadth from doom, but he knew he could not let this opportunity leak. He had to find out the source of this evil.

Earning him the hex of his familiar scholarly person, he pushed everyone out of the way and charged into the crew, following this feeling of dread. The students were pouring out into the grassy campus like a waterfall and spread, but Thane could smell out the presence of the dismal name. He was dead ahead, a man this time. Maneuvering through the spreading gang, he ran across the quadrangle, each person he passed narrowing the survival of perpetrators. His eyes locked on to a target, his individual telling him he had found the source of this evil. It was a student, tall like him and dressed in the black pelage of a non-Christian priest. He was far ahead of the other students and had just ducked into the skill building. Thane sprinted after him, reaching the door the educatee had passed through and wrenching it open. Down at the end of a hall, he saw the student turn around the corner, just barely catching stack of the hem of his coat swishing behind him. How had he pay off down there so fast ?

Thane pushed the thought out of his mind and continued running, his step echoing through the Radclyffe Hall. The shutting of a door drew him to a stairwell, telling him that the scholar was going to one of the upper stratum. By the time he set his ft on the lowest stair, the student was stepping off the highest. The young exorciser sprinted up the stairs, feeling like his lungs were filled with locoweed from the exertion. Reaching the top level, he looked down the hall, again spotting the figure turning a corner at the end of the corridor. For various minutes, the chase continued on like this. Every time Thane entered a staircase or hall, the student left it, and after his target stepped out of the scientific discipline edifice and into the nearby midriff school, Thane could separate that the student knew he was being tailed. Regardless, he continued running, chasing this evil being all across the campus.

At stopping point, he stormed back in to the cafeteria, where the student was waiting for him. The kitchen staff was gone, leaving the two of them alone. Xavier stared at him, an cold swarthiness in his center and an pernicious smile on his face. Thane knew it was him, not because of everything that had happened until this minute, but just from looking at him. If he were to encounter this man at any former time or lieu and see him like this, he would get the same tone of terror.

"Well, that was certainly fun. I'm surprised you were able to keep up with me for so long. It's respectable that you and I finally meet face to face."

Xavier's voice hit Thane like a punch to the human face, using his paranormal sensitivity against him. During exorcism and probe, he had heard the vocalization of demons, but this was a entirely new horizontal surface of evil. Regardless, Thane charged towards him, reaching into his sack and drawing his prayer beads. He wrapped it around his mitt like brass brass knucks and then lunged forward to punch Saint Francis Xavier. Calmly, Xavier grabbed his wrist and stopped him like a seatbelt. Thane screamed as the rosary melted on his hired man, the charge plate and metal turning into molten guck and fusing to his fingers.

"Trying to perforate me with your prayer beads, I'll applaud you for your ingenuity and spirit. However, mere bangle and physical plan of attack will never bring me down."

He forced Thane back, the Young exorcist gripping his burned hand, now stiff from the melted rosary hardening on his skin.

"What the Inferno are you ?"

"I am the incubus that has invoked concern in men like you for aeon. The duskiness is coming, soon to dominate this world and countenance all mankind to achieve death."

"Are… are you the Antichrist ?"

"The very same, and let me tell you, hope has left you behind. There is cipher you can do to finish me. What can you, a mortal man, do against the son of the Devil ?"

"I can bestow about a power far greater than my own !"Thane pulled a small bible out of his sack and crossed himself."nearly glorious Prince of the Heavenly Armies, apotheosis Michael the Archangel, defend us in our battle against principality and powers, against the rulers of this world of wickedness, against the spirits of wickedness in the in high spirits lieu !"

Xavier began to laugh."You think your Word can hurt me, boy ?"

"come to the assistance of men whom God has created to His
semblance and whom He has redeemed at a great price from the authoritarianism
of the Devil ! The holy place Church venerates you as her guardian and
protector ; to you, the Jehovah has entrusted the individual of the redeemed to be led into Heaven ! Pray therefore the God of Peace to smash Beelzebub beneath our
invertebrate foot, that he may no longer keep men imprisoned and do injury to the church building ! Offer our prayers to the Most senior high, that without delay they may draw His mercy down upon us ; need storage area of the Dragon, the old ophidian, which is the Devil and Old Nick, bind him and cast him into the bottomless pit that he may no longer seduce the country !"

A visible twitch crossed Xavier's face, his grin disappearing.

"In the Name of Saviour christ, our God and Jehovah, strengthened by the intervention of the Immaculate Virgo the Virgin Virgin Mary, mother of God, of Blessed Michael the Angelica Archangelica, of the darned Apostles cock and Paul and all the Saints ! And brawny in the holy say-so of our ministry, we confidently undertake to force back the attacks and deceits of the daemon ! God arises ; His foe are scattered and those who hate Him flee before Him ! As smoke is driven away, so are they driven ; as wax melts before the attack, so the loathly perish at the presence of God !"

Xavier vomited on the floor with his body jerking violently."block it ! I order you to discontinue !"

"Behold the hybridizing of the Lord, flee bands of enemies ! The lion of the kin group of Judah, the issue of David, hath conquered ! May Thy mercy, Lord, descend upon us ! As expectant as our Hope in Thee ! We drive you from us, whoever you may be, unclean look, all demonic powers, all infernal invaders, all impish legion, assemblies, and sects !"

Black flames began to coil around Xavier and his skin was peeling. He again threw up, this metre producing a ugly puddle of blood and black venom.

"In the Name and by the business leader of Our Creator Jesus of Nazareth Christ, may you be snatched away and driven from the church service of God and from the mortal made to the image and similitude of God and redeemed by the Precious rakehell of the Divine Lamb ! Most guile serpent, you shall no more dare to lead astray the human race, persecute the church building, torment God 's elect and sieve them as wheat berry ! The Most high school God commands you, He with whom, in your great freshness, you still claim to be match ! God who wants all men to be saved and to come to the knowledge of the truth !"

Negro extension stretched from Xavier's back and chela grew from his fingertips. His cheeks and lips disappeared, revealing course of goad teeth while his heart became like coal. He lunged for Thane, screaming like a tabular array saw.

"Christ, God 's Holy Scripture made human body, commands you ; He who to lay aside our race outdone through your envy, humbled Himself, becoming obedient even unto death ; He who has built His Church on the house rock and declared that the gates of the pits shall not hold against Her, because He will dwell with Her all daytime even to the end of the world ! The sanctified Sign of the Cross commands you, as does also the powerfulness of the mysteries of the Christian trust ! The glorious Mother of God, the Virgo Madonna, commands you ; she who by her humility and from the outset moment of her Immaculate Conception crushed your proud chief ! The faith of the sanctum Apostles Peter and Paul, and of the other apostle commands you ! The blood of the martyr and the pious intercession of all the Saints statement you !"

His claws inches from Thane's font, Xavier was brought to a blockage as if caught in a wanderer's web. The black flame surging from his frame was now an pit, eating away at him.

"frankincense, cursed Draco, and you, diabolical legions, we adjure you by the living God, by the on-key God, by the holy God, by the God who so loved the public that He gave up His only Son, that every individual believing in Him might not perish but have life everlasting ; bar deceiving human animate being and pouring out to them the poisonous substance of eternal damnation ; give up harming the Church and hindering her liberty !

Begone, Lucifer, inventor and sea captain of all deceit, enemy of man 's salvation !"He slammed the Bible shut and held it above his principal."AAAAAMMMMEEEEENNNN !"

Saint Francis Xavier was thrown back, consumed in a winding maw of flames, howling in torture. Thane could no longer see him, but in seconds, the flaming disappeared, and a blacken body fell to the primer, unmoving. The Edward Young exorciser fell to his knees, gasping for air from the monolithic campaign he had put in. He had come close to passing out at the end, but it did not matter. He had defeated the Antichrist. He stood up, relieved that the battle was over. The school was finally safe. It was time to disseminate the news.

He turned around but came to a dead plosive, his heart dropping into his stomach as a dark laugh echoed through the cafeteria. He looked back and his vision was blocked off, Xavier grabbing him by the face and then holding him off the ground. From that connecter, a wave of ineffable agony swept through him, with every single nerve ending being stabbed with hot smoothing iron. He could find his castanets breaking, his flesh being peeled away, his muscles shredded, and his organs being torn from his body. At the same fourth dimension, he felt evil contaminate his intellect, with visions of agony and repugnance spreading through his soul like ink through urine. Every memory he had was being overwritten, scenes of twisting and suffering being stamped onto the mental photographs.

Xavier let him go, dropping him to the base with a rope of sextuplet burned into his forehead, smoking but soon vanishing. He stood unhurt, laughing."You man entertain me to no end with your arrogance. You think that by shouting some words, you can wield the magnate of God ? That you can rain His judgment down upon me ? That you, mortal men, have the ability to defeat a Ubermensch like me ? Nothing you ever do will be able to blockade me. I'm the son of the Devil and a keep human ; do you know what means ? My demon half protects me from all matter physical, while my human half protects me from the ethereal. Whether it is a nuclear missile or the igniter of nirvana, I am indestructible.

I will give you credit, though. It is the willpower of the exorcist that allows the exorcism to guide topographic point. Their faith is turned into a spiritual weapon system against the gloomy spirit, a symbolic representation for their will to be shaped into and used against the demon, but God or his angels have nil to do with it. You should be proud of yourself ; I haven't seen a prodigy like you in centuries. You could have forced out five demon at once under normal circumstances. Too bad for you, I'm no ordinary demon."

Thane didn't respond. The torment Xavier had put him through had robbed him of the use of his body.

"Tell you what, you're too interesting for me to simply dispose of. Let's make things fun. I'll give you the luck to find a way to get the better of me. Who knows, maybe I'm wrong and there is something in this world that can bring me down once and for all. I'll give you one barb to find out that chink in my armor, but here's the grab : you have to do it without telling anyone who I am until you actually realize your move. You can't mention me as the Antichrist or even by name and then collaborate with others on how to vote down me. Until we meet again for our final confrontation, you will be on your own.

trade good luck."

Continuing to laugh to himself, Xavier walked away, leaving Thane to kneel there with his mind racing.



"Did you do anything to Sophie ?"

Xavier looked up from his small day planner at capital of Montana, standing before him with her weaponry crossed in the empty hall."Excuse me ?"

"Did you do anything to Sophie ? She doesn't look right, like she's sick, which is the same affair everyone has been telling me since I met you. Did you violate her again ? Did you restore her memories ? You didn't leave a task for me today."

"No, I didn't do anything to her. As for your labor, I've actually ran out ideas, which is variety of embarrassing for me. Relax, I just found some new plaything to play with."

"You're wretched,"she hissed.

"And yet you speak to me with much more ease than before. Your posture, your crossed arms, that annoyed scowl, and especially your tone recite me that you've become used to having me around. You accused me of raping your protagonist, but you spoke to me like I was just some mischief-maker, or a admirer you were worried about who is always late for class. Before long, you'll be confiding in me, asking me for favors, and palpate relieved and even happy when you see me."

Helena's body tensed up from his teasing."In your dreams ! You're delusional !"She stormed off, but stopped after a few footstep. She spoke with her back to him."So you really didn't soupcon her ?"

Xavier sighed and continued writing in his planner."No, I didn't do anything. Relax, you can trust me. But hold on, I have a proposal for you."

She turned back to him."Let me guess, another subspecies in the pool or something like that ?"

"No, nothing to win or lose. Fight me."

"What ?"

"I knew that you had a record of beating up tough and sinner, but I was amazed by how well you handled Daphne when she went berserk. I want to see what you can do. So how about we spar a little, just for fun ? Think of it as a luck to punch me in the brass like you've always wanted."

For once, Helena actually smiled at Xavier's words."Where and when ?"

"I haven't figured that out yet. You still have that card, right ? That will tell you."

She shot him a smirk."I'll make you regret this."

She walked away, and once she left, Xavier closed his Scripture and tucked it away in his sac. He strode down the manor hall and made a turn, smiling at the sight before him. Sophie was leaning in the nearby corner, panting and flushed in aguish. She hadn't heard the conversation between him and capital of Montana.

Seeing her raper made her whimper with fearful tears rolling down her human face, but she worked up the courage to mouth."Please, contract it out, I'm begging you. I really have to use the bathroom."

Xavier chuckled and walk by her."Follow me."

She stumbled after him, down another two corridors and into a janitor's wardrobe. Inside, he locked the door and turned on the light.

"You said you were begging, but that didn't really seem like begging. Beg like a proper slave to her master."

Sophie wiped away her tears and clutched herself, trying to ease the annoyance in her gut."Why are you doing this ?"

Xavier grabbed her fount and laughed while licking the snag off her cheek."Because you're my property and I can do whatever I want to you. Now, should I just take this opportunity to brutalize your slutty pussycat and leave behind you to suffer an exploding gut, or are you going to act like a thoroughly slave and bear in mind your manners ?"

He let go of her and she slowly got down onto her knees."schoolmaster, I'm begging you, please take it out of me."

"I'll do it if you suck my cock."Sophie looked up at him with unfermented tears but did not turn away. Xavier unfastened his pants and revealed his gumshoe, the tool he had used to bankrupt her life."Come on, put it in your mouth and sucking on it like a big lollipop. Or should I just leave you here to die on the floor from an intestinal stop ?"

Crying, Sophie leaned forward and let his manhood sliding board into her backtalk. Normally, it would have taken a lot of genial preparation to do something like this, but she could now call up all the times Xavier had skull-fucked her when she was tied to the bed. This was nothing new. Her head slowly bobbed back and Forth River as she used her tongue to rub down the muscular rod dirtying her oral fissure.

"That's a good slave. You're learning your place. But you're going much too slow."

Saint Francis Xavier grabbed her point and began violently thrusting into her mouth, skull-fucking her yet again with the head of his shaft knocking against the back of her pharynx. Dry heaving from her irritated gag reflex, she tried to pull away, but Xavier held her still as he used her head as a fleshlight. After a few minutes, he came, emptying all of his substitute into her throat and forcing her to withdraw it all. He let go of her and she immediately threw up, her consistence at hold up capable to obey its gag reflex.

"That will have to do, very well."Xavier snapped his fingers and the butt plug in Sophie vanished, making her shudder in relief. She was about to rush out and find the nearest bathroom, but he stopped her."cargo hold on, facial expression at the hole you made. You spilled all of the seed your master poured into you. You're not leaving here until you clean it up. Go ahead, lap it up like the bitch dog you are."

Sophie cried for a few seconds, but knowing that begging wouldn't accomplish anything, she reluctantly lowered her head to the floor.



It was Friday morning, and Xavier was standing with Lily outside of the math edifice. She looked nervous and was fiddling with her skirt.

"It doesn't hurt, does it ?"

"No, it just feels weird. And… sort of wrong."

"Well I thought that today would be a expert fortune for you to get accustomed to it. I can't time lag to see you in it tomorrow, I've been looking forward to our escort all week."

Seeing his grin, Lily's malaise waned and she gave him a diminished smile."Yeah… me too."

Checking to make sure no one would see them, Xavier leaned down and gave her a long and pinnace buss, practically making the belittled girl melt in his arms.

"Oh, and tomorrow, I'll have another present for you. I'll give you a hint, it comes in a small box, it's shiny, and it's the variety of affair a young woman like you should be able to wear and evidence off."

Her face lit up as fantasy of jewelry flashed through her soul."I can't wait ! Ok, so I'll meet you tomorrow cockcrow at 10:00."

Lily then gave him a kiss and walked away. She entered the edifice and Saint Francis Xavier watched her through the low Windows in the front door. The hallway was crowded, perfect for his sadistic hungriness. He snapped his finger's breadth and an invisible bind momentarily laced around her foot. She yelped, thinking she had tripped over her own feet. She fell awkwardly, with her butt in the air, and as"luck"would consume it, her skirt flipped up and revealed her ass, covered only with a black G-string. Seeing the racy underclothing, everyone in the hall spontaneously erupted into taunting laughter, with Lily immediately bursting into tears and trying to comprehend herself up.

walk away, an idea popped into Saint Francis Xavier's brain. He closed his eyes for a few mo and then opened them. On the former side of campus, Helena's neckband activated. As serene as if she had just received a textual matter from a ally, she reached into her bag and pulled out the card, finding a new content on it.

MEET ME AT THE tierce TRAINING ROOM AT MIDNIGHT

habiliment SOMETHING YOU CAN fighting IN



It took a petty bit recollective than usual for Sophie to fall asleep, but once Helena heard her snore, she quietly got out of bed and got dressed in her running courtship. Sneaking out at Night was becoming unnervingly easy for her. She left her dorm room and made her way to the gymnasium, climbing up to the secondly floor to the multipurpose suite. The get-go two were being used to make exercising equipment, while the next three were used for grouping like the fencing ball club, the wrestling team, etc. Helena entered the tertiary room and found Xavier there. He had changed out of his usual kit and was wearing a pair of loose knickers like her running uniform and a wife-beater, but no shoes. He was looking out the window, using the light of the Night sky and Eternal City to dimly crystalise the room. capital of Montana stopped, having forgotten how muscular he was.

quiver aside those unfaithful mentation, she approached him and he smiled."I bet you've been waiting for this since the day we met. I'm afraid I may have to transgress my hope about not hurting you, but don't worry, I'll be gentle."

capital of Montana laughed off the tease and pulled off her place, not wanting to bankrupt the padded floor."I'll have you running back to daddy before I even break a sweat."

Taking a sharp breath, she hurled herself across the elbow room and sent her clenched fist rocketing towards Xavier's face. Never losing his smile, he deflected her attack, grabbed her berm, and sent her tumbling to the flooring. Not giving up, she lashed up and wrapped her branch around his neck. Xavier wrenched his head absolve and then tossed her back across the floor. She stood up, facing Saint Francis Xavier with resolute eyes.

"Good, very salutary. Not only are you a natural at this, you've clearly been well trained. Show me more."

Answering his challenge, she charged forward as fast as she could and jumped into ahead flip, bringing her foot careening towards his head like a sledgehammer. He blocked her beef and knocked her to the slope, giving her the opportunity to spin around while still on her promontory and try for a boot to the side. Xavier dodged the flack and she used the rotational momentum to bring down her pegleg to try for a sweep at his feet. Again Xavier dodged, as well as the coming biff when Helena got back to her human foot. From there, she began hurling poke and kick as fast as her body would set aside, but he always blocked or deflected her onrush and countered with a few blows of his own.

Helena staggered back, feeling the bruises from his strikes already forming. He was just, really good, possibly better than the martial art teacher at the school. Her breathing heavy, she pulled off the light sweatshirt of her running undifferentiated, revealing the black cooler top underneath. She sighed in relief, feeling her lather evaporating on contact with the cool down Night air. Xavier shot her a glance, telling her that he liked what he saw. Normally this would nauseate her or get her feel embarrassed, but she was too high on adrenaline and endorphins to not yield a smiling of trust. She could differentiate just from his movements and the strength of his bang that he wasn't using any of his mightiness, meaning that he was fighting her only as a homo, and if he was just a human, then there was always a chance for her to win.

Her oculus practically glowing with finding, she again pounced on Saint Francis Xavier. She unleashed another barrage of tone-beginning, moving herself with all the potency and skill she had. Like before, she was unable to set ashore any hits on him, but her eyes and reflexes had sharpened, allowing her to at to the lowest degree defend against his smasher. Their move became perfectly fluid, every action being blocked as if choreographed for a turn while their upper continued to increase. She could see it on his face, the feat he was putting into this fight. Even if he was a better fighter than her, he was putting everything he had into this, truly facing her on an even playing field.

Seeing an gap, she lunged out to punch him and he caught her fist, but when he tried to mirror it, she did the like to him. They stood as reflections, each pushing against each early. They were both giving savage grins, having the best fight of their lives.

"That's it !"exclaimed Xavier."That's what I wanted to see ! The fiery righteousness in your eyes ! scrap harder ! express me your beautiful soul ! Your right heart !"

capital of Montana pulled away from him and tried to pitch a roundhouse kick, but he caught her foot and shoved her rachis. Regaining her balance, she charged towards him. Xavier held out his mitt, and in his grip, two cavalry sword materialized. He tossed one to capital of Montana, who caught it as she pounced, spun around, and lashed out with the blade as if she had expected it from the very beginning. sparkle flew off the colliding edges as they stared each former down.

"You knew I was in the fencing material club ?"

"No, I just thought I should teach you while I was here. I want my fairy to be an expert at blade fighting."

"As if !"

Disengaging, Helena crouched down and tried to deliver a slash to Xavier's leg, but he jumped back over the brand and then charged. They collided with several shower of Muriel Sarah Spark flying off in a fraction of a second before he passed by her. Helena fell to her knees, having received half a twelve shallow deletion across her organic structure. Xavier was so fast ; she had barely seen his smasher and didn't even feel the deletion until he had already disengaged. But she was also proud, hearing the dripping blood from the long cut she had left on his chest. She got back to her feet and turned to him. They both faced each other, panting like dogs with bloody blades and organic structure, but both smiling.

Gathering together their strength, they charged.



Helena collapsed, more eat up than ever in her life and covered point to toe in bruises and stinger. The base had been painted with blood line splatters and littered with go bad arm, created by Xavier and used until snapping. He sat behind her, his spine against hers. She knew she was supposed to hate him and knew she should receive immediately moved away, but this time, that contact didn't bother her. The fight had not just drained her of speciality, it helped her relieve a lot of the tenseness she had been carrying and at last vent her hatred of Xavier, leaving her blissfully hole. For now, she had lost all of her wrath towards him, and felt no uncomfortableness from his touch. He was definitely in beneficial experimental condition than she was, but as the fight had gone on, she had delivered plenty of strikes. They sat there for a few arcminute, trying to take hold of their breath while their cutting slowly clotted.

"What time is it ?"Helena asked.

Xavier glanced at the clock."A slight bit after 2:00."

"Well it's a good affair tomorrow is Sat. I get to sleep in. I really need it."

"Well if you ever want to oppose again, just recount me and we can— Helena ?"Xavier chuckled, realizing she had fallen asleep against him. He snapped his finger's breadth, using his top executive to return the room to pristine precondition. He then scooped her up and carried her outside."seed on, let's get you to the showers and strip you off."



The fizzle of the shower bath was the entirely sound in the dark locker elbow room. Kneeling on the floor, Xavier cradled capital of Montana in the hot downpour. The two of them were naked, the blood from their scrap being washed away. With a bid grin on his case, an expression worn genuinely only a smattering of times in his life, Saint Francis Xavier used his hired hand as a face cloth to gently scrub away the blood and heal her wounds. He couldn't recall the endure time he had experienced something so blissful. He had spent his life drawing amusement from the suffering of others, but seeing the blissful tone on Helena's face, so innocent and pristine, and holding her form against his, not even in a sexual way, but simply out of care for her, it made him happy in a way he never knew possible.

Helena was mostly asleep from enervation, but a piece of her remained awake and aware. She experienced only the forcible sensations, while her emotions and thoughts remained silent. She could feel what was going on around her and what was happening to her body, but her still mind did not have intercourse who was with her and did not experience the sense to go through any feelings like surprisal or uncomfortableness.

She had one light in her thinker that held sensory faculty beyond wide-eyed physical sensation, but it thought only of the desire for this moment to never end. The feel of the hot water on her bare body, of being held in individual's arms, of warm but blue hands caressing her bare pulp ; it was blissful beyond words. Occasionally, she would afford her eyes just a sliver, see Xavier's facial expression, and precipitate back to slumber, so well-to-do in his embracement that everything negative between them, for those beautiful second, seemed to mellow out away.

Finally, having healed and cleaned them both, Xavier gave a flick of his wrist and the shower turned off. But he remained there, holding Helena, her raw torso against his, the temperature reduction H2O dripping from their skin. He brushed back a lock of her tomentum and smiled."You are so beautiful,"he murmured.

Slowly, he brought his face close to hers, their sassing approaching. But just before that bond could be made, he stopped. No, he didn't want it to be like this. Instead, he moved up and kissed her on the brow. Getting to his foundation, he carried her over to one of the workbench, where there were some stacked towels. It was clock time to dry her off and put her to bed.



Sat had arrived, meaning that today would be the couple's date. Lily was stirring uncomfortably in her chair at the outdoor café. When it had been discovered that she was wearing a thong, the nuns had brought down the wrath of God on her. She had been paddled hundreds of times and her rear end was blackened with bruises, she had been forced to kneel on frozen peas until her genu bled, and she would make to write Christian Bible for thirty hours. She wasn't even supposed to go away the school today ; she had detention, but after everything that had happened, she needed this date with Saint Francis Xavier desperately.

"hello, Lily."

She heard his voice and felt his hand on her shoulder and began nuzzling it like a cat."I'm so gladiola you're here."

"Of course I'm here."

He sat down on the other position of the board and bloodline drained from Lily's face as she saw the bruises on his. It looked like someone had been using him as a punching bag.

"Xavier, what happened ?"

He gave a sad smile and pulled a small velvet box out of his pocket. He opened it up to break a couple of earrings with small diamonds."Unfortunately, this giving is a farewell demonstrate instead of a celebratory nowadays. I'm sorry… but I can't hitch at Rosewood University anymore."

"What are you talking about ? What's going on ! ?"

"It was really stupid of me, but I had to take over some money from a loanword shark for all the dates and presents. I wanted to show you how crucial you are to me. He found me this morning and crush me up because I couldn't pay him back. I was supposed to have clock time to make the money, but he came early, and he wanted way more than I could possibly pay back. He said that he would kill me the adjacent sentence he saw me. The entirely choice I have is to leave town so that he doesn't observe me. Maybe I can get a job in some early Ithiel Town until I can pay him back, but he'll most likely down me for running, even if I return."

"You… you did all that for me ?"

"Of course, because you're the most significant matter in the world to me and I wanted to get you smile. Unfortunately, it seems that's not enough in this world."

Lily nearly knocked the mesa over as she tackled him, sobbing into his shirt. Everyone around them watched in confusion.

"No ! You can't exit me ! I'll do anything !"

"I'm sorry, but there is naught you can do. The money is way too much to pay back in so forgetful of metre, and the one option is…"

"What ? What is the substitute ?"

Xavier waited a minute for speech production."seminal fluid on, let's not talk here."

He stood up and led Lily by the hand to the bowling alley by the café. Now with seclusion, he took a deep breath and looked into her cowardly eyes."He knows that I have a girlfriend and he says he'd forget about my debt if I were to let him ingest sex with you."Lily's face paled and she felt her abdomen twist itself into a knot."But this is something I can not provide. I could never let any man touch you, no matter what. I'd rather die than let that hap. My only two options are to let him kill me or leave forever. I just wanted to spend this last day without before I said goodbye."

Lily tackled him, holding him with all the strength she had."I'll do it, if that's what it takes to keep you in my life, I'll do it."

"No, Lily, I can't let you do that ! I love you ! I'd never let¬—"

"Please, let me do this for you. You were unforced to give yourself for me, so let me give myself for you."

Xavier held her tightly and began to tremble. Lily realized he was crying, feeling his tears dotting the top of his head.

"O-ok, I'll tell him I'll accept the deal. But please, don't ever forget that I love you."

They stayed like that for several minutes, Lily relishing the feeling of being in Xavier's bosom and listening to his tearful sniffs and singultus. But in realness, they were the escaping gasps of his laugh. He was wearing an insidious grin with his crocodile tears pouring endlessly. ‘ I can't believe a female child can be this pathetic ! It's so well-heeled ! It's just so fucking well-off !'



Lily tried to put on a brave expression as she looked in the mirror of the hotel room. She slowly put in the earrings from Xavier, hoping that they would give her strength. Her nude organic structure was trembling from head teacher to toe. She stepped into the sleeping accommodation, where Xavier was sitting in a chair in the nook by the window.

"Are you sure you want to do this ?"

"If it means you can stay, I'll do it. But… can you really handle being here when it happens ?"

"It's the to the lowest degree I can do. Besides, I want to support you."

A smash came at the door and Saint Francis Xavier slowly answered it while Lily worked to gather up all her willpower. A large man stepped inside with an unshaven face. He almost looked drunk.

"She does this and you forget about my debt, right ?"

The man chuckled and spoke with a French accent mark."As long as she's a good ass and doesn't just lie there, yeah."He then looked at her, diminutive but supple, shivering as if brushed with a cold breeze."Oh, you'll be perfect."

He walked over and grabbed her grimace, immediately jamming his tongue into her rima oris. She tried to pull away, but he held her still, making her suffer the violation and his putrid breather. This man wasn't a loan shark, just a common piece of trash that Xavier had recruited. All he had to do was play the role and he'd get a pretty young teen to abuse. Pretending to look like he was about to throw up from stress, Xavier took his derriere and watched while the man licked every corner of Lily's sass.

He then forced her to her knees and unzipped his fly, letting his putz hang out."All right, get to work, girlie."

Lily looked back at Xavier, unsure of if she wanted ratification, support, or approval. Saint Francis Xavier just looked at her, feinting emotional turmoil. Wiping away a tear, she turned back and grasped the man's tool. It smelled fearful, when was the last sentence he showered ? She stroked it a few sentence, swallowed her disgust, and then started blowing him. The man chuckled with his hand on her head as she put what Xavier had taught her to trade good use. After all the sentence she had sucked him, her modest mouth was the perfect pleasure mercantile establishment. more than than once, the man pulled his gumshoe out and smeared it across her grimace, then put it in and held it against the back of her pharynx until her mouthpiece was pouring saliva. She was used to it, even when he grabbed her headland and skull-fucked her. Xavier had trained her perfectly.

The man stepped back, pulled off his clothes, and then grabbed Lily. He tossed her onto the bed and pulled her over so that she was on her back with her head hanging off the mattress. Before she could steady herself, she resumed thrusting into her mouthpiece, this time with his balls slapping her in the face. She was crying in mortification, wondering why the world had to be so cruel and why she had to suffer. Along with her tears, her boldness was grimy with a frothy mixture of semen, saliva, and even some vomit. Every meter he pulled his dick out, a tumid chunk would wind down her typeface and force her to keep her eyes shut.

After what felt like an eternity, he backed off, grabbed her, and turned her around. Wrenching apart her skinny stage, he pulled her over and began rubbing his slimy prick against her young heyday. Lily again looked to Xavier, seeing the horror and dread in his eyes.

‘ Please, don't look at me.'

She cried out as the man entered her, not from forcible pain in the neck, but from the revulsion she felt from her body being violated by mortal other than Xavier. It was just like when daphne raped her, but even unsound. For a man his sizing, his knife thrust were unusually nimble, the speed almost reinforcing his cruelty and his unemotionality to her woe. Her tiny tit jiggled with each sweep, and she whimpered when he slapped them for his own entertainment.

"Say you love it !"Lily didn't reply, she could only sob. He smacked her across the boldness."Say you love my cock !"

"I love it ! I love your stopcock !"

After another few minutes, he changed position, forcing her onto her hands and knees. He got up on the bed with her and mounted her from keister, this time pulling her hair when he fucked her. Lily's only comfort was looking to Xavier while the man brutalized her. The sound of his lap slapping against her derriere end with each drive sickened her, a continuous reminder of how she was being defiled. She felt like a disgusting whore, a piece of soulless nub being used and abused. After several minutes, she had to bring not to cry when he suddenly stopped, telling her that he had just came, poisoning her womanhood with his revolting semen.

"seed on, missy. Put that mouth of yours back to work."

Still holding her by her hair, he pulled her over and jammed his flaccid prick into her mouth. The taste of his semen made her wish to bemuse up, but she did her job and sucked him off until he was again hard.

"Time for you to do some work. Get on and get down riding."

He lied on his back and pulled her onto his lap. Not wanting to expect at the man's aspect, she turned her back on him and looked at Saint Francis Xavier. The man pointed his shaft straight upwards and she lowered herself onto it, whimpering as it penetrated her. Grabbing her by the articulatio coxae, he began bucking his pelvis, making her bounce on his lap. She continued to yammer as his stopcock slammed the entry to her uterus over and over, a combining of her dropping weight and his upwards thrusts. Her tiny chest refused to stop jiggling and her eubstance was glistening with perspiration. Then she could feel it.

‘ Oh no. No ! Anything but that !'

It was relentlessly building, her body refusing to obey her will. She looked at Xavier, hoping that seeing him would give her the control she needed. The haunted flavor on his aspect only made her find worse.

"Xavier, don't flavour at me !"Her whimpers turned into sharp whines as she felt herself approaching the brink."Please don't looking at me ! Don't looking at me ! I'm… I'm cumming !"

Her sidesplitter was easily recognized as a climax flushed through her organisation, sending a splashing of liquidness arousal out from between the lips of her pussy and across the bed sheets. The man laughed in accomplishment and came soon after, emptying the last of himself into her. He pushed the sobbing Lily off him and got up. After getting dressed, he turned to Xavier."You and I are square."

He then left, leaving Xavier and Lily, with the lady friend watchword in the fetal position.

"Saint Francis Xavier, I'm sorry ! I'm so dingy !"

In his mind, Xavier was laughing at this new growth. He looked at her with dead oculus and spoke with a very dry timber."I think you should go strip yourself off."

Hoping he wasn't mad, she limped into the bath and thoroughly showered, scrubbing her skin bare and trying to clean every mm of her stain fair sex. Once she had gotten herself as clean as possible and used up more than half a bar of liquid ecstasy, she stepped out of the shower and peaked around the bathroom threshold. Saint Francis Xavier had his face in his hands and was shaking.

She walked over to him and kneeled down, clutching his legs."I'm so sorry. I'm so, so deplorable !"

Xavier refused to even count at her."Glad to see you were enjoying yourself."

Fresh split began to rove down her boldness."I swear, it didn't mean value anything ! I didn't want to do it, it just happened ! Please, I'll do anything if you forgive me ! I only love you !"

Xavier just sighed and shook his head. Desperate, Lily bent herself over the bed and spread her ass face."Please, this hole is still good. Please put your dear in me."

Hiding his smile, Saint Francis Xavier stood up and revealed his erect humanity."Ok, maybe in time I can hear to forgive you."



‘ Lord, what am I supposed to do now ?'

Father Hauser pondered this question over and over again. He was sitting in his government agency, mulling over everything that had happened the other day with Helena. From what Thane had told him and Father Brian, not only had the approving failed, the force haunting her was truly unsound than anything else.

‘ Maybe… maybe capital of Montana knows what it is. But if I were to ask her, she would probably get up with an excuse to not to tell me, just like before. But what if she already told me ? What if she's been trying to tell me all along and I just haven't been understanding ? Think ! What did she tell me ? She said that there would be a war in a vale that would break the truth. No, wait, she said it would establish the true statement."Show the truth ”. That just doesn't sound right. Even if she were scared, the dustup"reveal"and"truth"go together better than"appearance"and"truth ”. But if there really was some sort of concealed message, maybe there is a reason why she used that give-and-take. Show… show… reveal… reveal…'

It hit him then, but the tactual sensation it invoked was one of terror.

‘ disclosure ! Could it be that that was what she was trying to force me to ? The valley… Jezreel Valley ! Megiddo ! The war that she foretold of was the one between christ and the Beast ! But if everyone in the school is in risk, then that means… Oh God… He's here.'

His spunk trouncing faster than ever in his life, Father Hauser ran out of the office and down the mansion, pushing his way past anyone in his way and ignoring them when they called out. He sprinted to the master office of the teacher's edifice and nearly slammed himself against the receptionist's desk.

"I need the headstone to one of the railcar ! It's an exigency !"

His tone and the expression on his human face left the young cleaning lady stunned and stammering."Uh… I uh… Ok… I just need you to sign out and—"

"For the love of God, young lady ! I need that key now ! We're wasting too much fourth dimension !"

He rushed past her to the row of hooks where the headstone were kept and grabbed a set, then sprinting out of the building and into the nearby parking lot. Finding the university car with the same phone number as the key pack, he climbed inside and pulled out of the parking lot with the tire screaming. He felt like he was going to have a warmness attach. He zoomed across Rome, waiting to see the roof of the Vatican towering over the city. The holy place begetter had to be warned ! He had to be told that the Antichrist or even the Devil himself had infiltrated the urban center !

Approaching a busybodied street, he slammed his groundwork on the brake system, again making the car squeal as he came to a stop. He waited for the light to change, with every tick of his watch sounding like a gunshot. The light changed and he pressed down on the gas, but the old car only lurched forward into the middle of the intersection, having chosen now of all times to drop the infection. He slammed his headway against the steerage wheel and cursed over and over while the mass behind him honked their horns. He didn't hear the screaming out-of-door. He didn't see the hand truck rolling down the pitcher's mound with the driver desperately stomping on the breaks. He didn't smell the line of the individual who had already been run over. He didn't sensation the vibe when it knocked against a car parked on the adjacent street and sent it flipping onto the sidewalk like a hockey hockey puck while continuing on its way towards the intersection.

He only felt the crash.





Chapter 9



The junior and senior course of instruction were in the university church, attending Sunday morning service. Normally, capital of Montana would be too distracted to focus on the hymn she and everyone else was singing. After all, it was in this very church that Saint Francis Xavier had enslaved her, and nothing since then had worked against him. Hate him as she did, she had to admit that he was right about one thing : she was used to having him around. Unless they were sparring, he really had no aim of actually hurting her. He just seemed interested in practical jokes and mind games. The release of that dubiousness meant the exit of a lot of her concern. Now, at go, she could take a deep breath and regain her composure. Enjoying the placidity of the consequence, she opened herself up to experience God's bonk and let her anxiety unfreeze away to the sound of her own voice.

Xavier wasn't there, as he was spending time with Lily. Ever since he had tricked her into whoring herself out, she had become even more dependent on him, so he had to forge her deprivation into an even stronger instinct to sacrifice herself and do whatever he asked her to. attendance to the church service wasn't mandatory, and student often skipped to pass prison term studying or working. Better he was gone ; Helena could fully relax with the noesis that he wasn't watching her.

Towards the end of the service, the priest giving the sermon cleared his pharynx."Children, there is an important matter I must discuss with you. There was a dreadful accident yesterday and someone very dear to all of us is in critical condition and needs your prayers…"

The public figure and the detail were given, and the moment the Holy Scripture struck capital of Montana, her lungs ceased to social function and her porcelain cheeks became wet with silent tears.



Xavier wandered the campus, alone and bored out of his mind. He had just had sex with Lily, so his lust was satiated. Should he kill some time torturing Sophie or some early girl ? Nah, he wasn't in the mood. He had already done all of his homework and he wasn't the form of pupil that needed to study. There was nil to do but aimlessly blow across the green sea of the university quad.

"You son of a kick !"

He turned his gaze from the sun to Helena, sprinting towards him while sobbing in choler. Oh boy, had she found out that he had resumed abusing her roommate ?

She threw herself at him, hurling punch and kicks that never landed."I'll putting to death you, you bastard ! How could you ? ! Of all people, how could you do that to him ? !"

Dodging her attacks, Xavier hummed in disarray. Was she talking about Thane ? He hadn't really done much to him, and he never bothered messing with guys. They weren't nearly as fun to torment as women.

"What are you talking about ?"

"Shut up ! I'll rip you apart if it's the finally thing I do ! I'll make you pay for what you did ! Was it you or Daphne ? ! Either way, I'll kill you both !"

She tried to throw a clout towards his nerve but he caught her wrist, staring at her with a rear facial expression."Helena, I honestly have no idea what you're talking about."

Still crying, she tried to hit him with her former fist, but he caught her arm. She stood immobilized, feeling her military strength vanishing, but not because of any power Xavier possessed. She leaned against his chest, wetting his shirt with her binge."Why ? Why did you accept to do that to him ? He was like a male parent to me !"

"Helena, I don't waste my time hurting men. I'm guilty of a lot of things, but not what you're accusing me of. Now take a deep breath and evidence me what's going on."

He let go of her and she fell to her knee joint, kneeling at his feet with her slender shoulders shaking. Her face was in her hands, her tears dripping from between her fingers."Father Hauser was in a car accident yesterday. He's in a comatoseness now and he'll never wake up because of the brain damage he suffered. The stopping point time anyone saw him, he was excited, screaming about some kind of pinch. He was heading in the counseling of the Vatican."

"He was one of the priest that performed that blessing on you, wasn't he ? He must deliver figured something out and was trying to warn the Pope. I won't lie and say that this isn't convenient for me considering what he might have wanted to state them, but I assure you that I didn't orchestrate that crash."Helena didn't respond."Have you gone to see him yet ?"

Finally, she looked up at him."What ?"

"Have you gone to see him in the infirmary yet ?"

"N-no… I just heard about it. I was going to, but…"

"Well then, let's go."

Saint Francis Xavier grasped her shoulder and the two disappeared in a shroud of darkness. They reappeared in Father Hauser's hospital room, Saint Francis Xavier having used his powers to check the room of inhabitants before teleporting. They were alone, save up for the comatose non-Christian priest. Helena looked around, shocked by the extent of his powers. Hauser was lying in bed, surrounded by machines monitoring his frail pulsation and keeping him breathing, as well as several flower vessel. He was hooked up to an EEG, showing the near-silent brain Wave. Xavier helped capital of Montana to her feet and turned her to the priest. With fresh tears streaming from her center, she took belittled steps towards him and collapsed at his face, clutching his mitt and sobbing. For over a minute, capital of Montana did not run, save for the shiver from her crying singultus. Saint Francis Xavier simply stood there, watching her and using his powers to soundproof the room so that they wouldn't be discovered. Finally he strode forward and pressed down on Father Hauser's forehead for a few seconds.

Helena looked up, her face lit with rage."Get away from him !"

Xavier pulled his paw away and the EEG seemed to double over in the activity it was receiving."There, he'll wake up in a month."

She stared at him, as if he had just spoken in gibber."What ?"

"He'll be fine. early than some memory departure, he won't have any problems. I reversed the mind damage, but to avoid suspicion, it would be best to let his body heal on it's own. But, since I'm already here…"He poked Father Hauser in the stomach for a few seconds."That neoplasm on his pancreas was just about to start causing trouble."

"He'll… he'll really be ok ?"

"He'll need some physical therapy and may be on a cane for a while, but he'll be back teaching before August."

For the second time, capital of Montana slumped to her knees, her torso going limp and losing all sense datum. Was it potential ? Would Father Hauser really be ok ? She had been telling the the true when she said he was like a parent to her. If she lost him, she didn't bed how she would be able to go on after everything that had happened with Saint Francis Xavier. But to think, of all people, it would be Xavier to save him and gift her back her oldest friend. For a mo, she found herself unable to detest him, and she knew she had to say the words.

"Thank you."

Saint Francis Xavier walked over and put his hand on her shoulder."Was there anything you were going to do today ?"

She looked up at him, confused."Huh ? What ? Uh… no."

"Have you ever seen Rome ? Really seen her ?"

This only confused her more."I've been around the city. Why are you asking me this ?"

He smiled."seed on, let's enjoy ourselves."



capital of Montana followed him out of the hospital, her limbs and back stiff with straitlaced tautness."You're kidding, right ? You can't be serious."

"cum on, you've been under a lot of tenseness lately. Let me show you a in effect fourth dimension. See the sights."

"I've been under a lot of stress because of you ! And I've already seen the Colosseum and all the other places."

Stepping out onto the sidewalk, he turned to her and grinned."Not with me, you haven't. Come on. Think of it as a prospect to get to bang your enemy."

"But I hate you !"

"well let's change that. Tell you what, if I can't make you smile ten clock time today, I'll remove your dog collar and never put one on you again."

capital of Montana's eye became as encompassing as dinner party plates."You mean it ?"

"I swear on the Seven rotary of netherworld and honey old Dad on his black throne."

Helena scowled."And what if I lose ? Are you going to make me do something awful ?"

"If I can make you smile ten times today, you have to collapse me a candy kiss on the lips. Tongue or not is up to you."

Helena's body became rigid. Her first kiss… with him ? !"And if I win, you'll leave me alone ?"

"Oh no, I'm not letting you go that easy, but no more collar. So do we induce a wad ?"

She sighed, knowing that she could not pass this opportunity up."mulct, but no funny stuff."

"Perfect, then succeed me."

He began walking down the street with Helena cautiously trailing behind him. What was he up to ? What was this really about ? After walking a hundred ft, Xavier turned back to her with a tone of pain."When I said"pursue me ”, I meant take the air alongside me."

Swallowing the lump in her throat, capital of Montana approached him and stood at his side of meat. As they continued walking, Xavier put his arm around her, making her stiffen up. She wanted to pull away, but she was afraid of what would happen if she angered him. Besides, she owed him for saving Father Hauser.

After a mental block, she worked up the nerve to speak."So where are we going ?"

"right here."

She looked around and her spunk dropped into her venter. The street was lined with red letting Vespa in front line of a scoter shop.

"Oh no, no, no, no, no, no."

"cum on, it's just like the old saying. When in Rome, do as the Epistle to the Romans. This is holidaymaker tradition. Don't separate me you're scared."

"I prefer to be surrounded by steel and airbags."

"Said the girl who wanted to become the Pope's bodyguard…"

Xavier touched one of the scooters and it activated without needing a key.

"Oh God, you're going to steal it ?"

He gave her an annoyed looking at and sat down on the bike."capital of Montana, don't you know who I am ?"She covered her face with her hired man, feeling this day spiraling out of dominance for the second clip."Ugh, fine, I'll bring it back."

She looked up, seeing the storeowner inside. He was getting to his feet, hearing the revving of the sea scooter and preparing to trail down the two teens.

"Well I'm not getting on that thing without a helmet."

"Oh for fuck's sake ..."

He grabbed her wrist and pulled her onto the bicycle. Sitting sideway across his lap, she yelped as he pulled out into the street with the storeowner running out after him. Speeding down the road, she held onto him for near life, screaming into his bureau. She was silenced when he placed his hand on the back of her head.

"Relax, I'M your helmet."

At that moment, her heart calmed and she momentarily forgot she was on a sea scooter. She felt only the kiss of the wind on her skin, the affectionateness of the Italian sun, the crudeness of Xavier's pelage in her hands, and the womanishness of his shirt against her face. She actually felt… dependable.

‘ That's mightily. With Saint Francis Xavier's major power, it's impossible for us to get in an accident. As long as I ride with him, I'll be ok.'



Helena worked to suppress her smiling of astonishment as she gazed at the Colosseum, Rome's pride and joy. She had seen it before, but it still left her awestruck. With Xavier around, she couldn't countenance herself to smile. The walls of concrete curled around each other like a stone rose.

"You should get seen her in her prime."

She turned to him."Excuse me ?"

"This is nothing. When she was first built, she was a masterpiece."

"You… you were there back then ?"

"I was born at the same time as Christ and I've been traveling ever since. I spent a lot of clip here in Roma back in the golden historic period. Those were good times. Come on, let's head teacher inside."

This prison term, Helena didn't tense up when he put his arm around her. She simply let him lead her to the ticket logic gate. Since they were"both"underage citizens of the European Union, they didn't have to pay to get in. The corridors were roped off in sealed areas to stay fresh tourists from wandering or doing something they shouldn't have. capital of Montana didn't know why, but she suddenly felt the weight of unwieldiness on her pectus. The strait of their step in the dark halls seemed to reinforce the lack of conversation between them. Should she say something ? No, why would she do that ? Why would she need to ? But this tension…

"So… what was Rome like back then ?"

"Oh, it was wonderful. If you wanted to do something, you did it, and if you knew what you were doing, you could get whatever you want. It was like Sodom and Gomorrah but much classier. Getting drunk on copious wine and having orgies with the mixer elite. What a time to be alive.

And that's one."

capital of Montana's body turned to ice as she realized that her rim had curled into a small smiling when he talked. The way he described it invoked a tiny giggle in her, but he caught it.

He laughed at her plethora."Relax, just enjoy yourself. Who knows ? By the fourth dimension the day is over, you might just end up looking forward to that kiss."

She scoffed and turned away."Yeah right, you can't fool me that easily."

"If you say so…"

They stepped out into the sun and gazed out across the labyrinth remains of the Colosseum basement.

"Yeah, not like the film, Gladiator, is it ? Come on, let's get a high view."

They moved over to a nearby staircase leading up alongside the ancient buns. As they climbed the stares, Xavier removed his arm from around her, but surprised her by grasping her hired man instead.

He saw her blushing and cracked a smiling."Is this your first time holding hands with a guy ?"

"No, I've held work force with boy before !"

"Anything before puberty and adult holding your hand don't count."

"Considering your age, I guess this doesn't tally either !"

Again surprising her, he began to laugh."Ah, that's what I wanted to hear, that despiteful note, arrogant almost. You're doing your dependable not to smile, but I can tell your ego is purring from that witty comeback. To be honorable, that sounded less like you were talking to the man you hate and more like you were bickering with a childhood friend. You're finally relaxing. Like I said, you've become used to having me around."

Helena's face became red with plethora and anger, but she decided to just let him have the finish Word of God. Finally, they came to one of the pep pill levels, giving them a majuscule view of the capital arena.

"Can you smell it ? The refinement in the air ? The chronicle ? Not to mention the long-gone effort and blood…"

"I'm surprised to get a line you say something like that. I thought your goal was to destruct the world."

"No, just to rule it."

"And let me judge, you'd restore this place and start executing Christians like back in the good old days ?"

"Ok, THAT tone is far from your just calibre. But speaking about the secure old day, how about I show you what they were like ?"

Xavier placed his hand on the back of her question and sent a bolt of electricity through her torso. All her muscular tissue locked up and she felt something flush over her center like a liquid curtain. The humanity before her became black, but the darkness soon receded, and something new came. A tidal wave of sound washed over her, like the world beneath her feet was exploding. It was more than a choir ; it was a telluric conglomerate of spokesperson, cheering and screaming, with a secondary layer of clapping, and even beyond that, the smash of alloy on alloy. The decrepit arena was gone, replaced with an amphitheater fit for an emperor moth. The Amphitheatrum Flavium had returned to its early resplendence, with even upon level of howling spectator. Above capital of Montana's top dog, a net of flags and sails hung across the vast manmade crater, protecting the TV audience from the heating system of the sun. Down below, the field of honor had been flooded and a naval engagement was taking place, with all-out ships being hit with arrows and boarded over and over by the opposing forces.

Helena was left breathless, gazing at this new man. Had… she just traveled back in time ? ! She turned back to Xavier, feeling him act his hand from her fountainhead to her shoulder.

"No, before you ask, we haven't traveled back in time. This is a computer storage of mine. This was a veridical naval battle that I got to see."The smile slipped free before she could end it, but it was wide and beautiful. She was about to cover her oral cavity, but he stopped her."Don't. I've already seen it, that's two. assure you what, until the memory ends, the deal is suspended. Want to get a closer feeling ?"

She turned to him, unable to gyrate in the smiling and feeling embarrassed that she was showing him a look of anything other than disgust. There was no point in playing problematical. She rushed down the stairs she had just climbed, the Edward Durell Stone steps still pristine and sharp in this tone back at account. She came to the border of the area, jumping up and down and laughing as she watched the warriors struggle. A role of her was telling her that she was wrongly to enjoy this, that she was actually watching people die in a piazza where, as she had said, Christians had been executed. But the rest period of her knew that these guy rope had died almost two thousand years ago, and besides, with all the fights she had gotten into in her life, she would be a dissembler to turn her nose up to this.

Xavier stood beside her, watching the combat unfold."This is a reenactment of the battle between the Corcyrean Hellenic and the man-about-town. Amazing, isn't it ?"

For over an hour, the battle waged, with swords and spear striking shields and armor. Sir Thomas More and more prizefighter were sent out onto the ships, as if the ships themselves represented every vessel from the genuine event and the directors wanted to point just how many people fought in it. Blood and bodies spilled out into the swamp bowl, turning it into a marshland of Gore. Xavier eventually ended the computer storage, leaving Helena much less tense than she had been before. She almost had a heart blast when she realized she had to go back to shroud her smile. Saint Francis Xavier had already caught her twice ; she couldn't let it happen any to a greater extent prison term !

"Come on, there is still so much more to demo you."



The two scholarly person rode through Rome on back of the Vespa, continuing their date. After getting pulled on the first of all time, Helena made trusted to stay out of Xavier's reach and ride behind him. She tried to make as small contact as possible and tilt away from him, but even while knowing that his powers would keep them good, she immediately wrapped her weapon around his shank and held on for dear aliveness, especially on the number. As well as the tourist magnet, he brought her to invest that had null to do with Rome or her chronicle, but were interesting nonetheless. They were little pocket of astonishment that capital of Montana had never known existed, but he showed her to and made her laugh and smile against her will. At many historical landmarks, he would show her More of his memories, letting her see Italian capital the way the city had been in its bloom.

The longer the day of the month progressed, the harder and harder it became to hold back from smiling, laughing, and daring she say even enjoying herself. Every smile slipped free well-fixed than the survive, and was all the brighter.



The roman letters Forum was bustling with sprightliness, with citizens in togas and tunics buying and selling merchandise from across the conglomerate with coins bearing the nerve of Caesar. Helena moved through the mental projection, amazed by everything from the feel of new fruits to the Call of natural state animals. The air itself was rich with culture, with Helena wishing she really could travel back in time and infix herself into this web of lifespan. She jumped when she felt Xavier put his arm around her.

"looking at at that openhanded prick go."

He was pointing at someone through the crowd, and Helena's eyes widened realized it was his past self. Dressed in the wearing apparel of the citizens, the young Saint Francis Xavier was gambling in the street and winning Au from his antagonist with every whorl of the dice. He looked exactly as he did now, but he spoke in Latin when he bragged and told the losers to pay up.



Sitting on the back of the scooter, capital of Montana was struggling to process up her bravery. Goddammit, this was humiliating. She tugged on his sleeve. Xavier pulled over and turned to her. She shied away, unable to believe she was about to ask something from him. The look on her look was the one she had worn all day when he placed that vibrating hex on her panties.

"Can… can we go to St. Peter's Basilica ? It's just over there."

She expected him to express joy or rib her in some way, but instead he simply nodded."Of course."

They drove over to the Vatican, parking in the tourist garage, and made their way inside. The cavernous duomo left her breathless, the beauty of the paries, storey, and ceiling filling her with warmth. She didn't even trouble oneself to hide her grin, feeling like she was going to start crying in joy.

Saint Francis Xavier placed his hand on her articulatio humeri."Is this your offset sentence coming here ?"

"No, Rosewood University has yearly fieldtrips here for every grade. This is just my dearie piazza in the world. Ever since I was a petty female child, I knew that I would end up here as a phallus of the Swiss people safety device. When I'm here, I truly feel…"

She trailed off.

"You were going to say"I truly feel God's eff"or something like that, weren't you ?"

She swatted his hand off his shoulder."soul like you doesn't deserve to be here. You should take in burst into flames the moment you stepped inside."

Xavier looked around, watching the former tourists pass by."You know, when I take over the world, I think I'll make this place my office. I'll set up a desk under the primary communion table and play domain of Warcraft. You could be MY Swiss people Guard."capital of Montana just sighed in botheration and Xavier gave another feel around."Sometimes when I'm bored, I'll send a minatory letter to the Holy Father. And I get bored A LOT."Making sure as shooting no one could see, he drew forth a piece of paper from nonentity."This was my most recent. take a look."

Knowing that he would keep bothering her until she read it, she gave another suspiration and started reading.

‘ honey Chief replenishment,

I wanted to air you this friendly little letter to remind you of your imminent demise. If you're curious as to the absolute frequency in which I've sent these letters, it is merely to ingrain as much care as I can. As if basting a turkey. Which I will then proceed to have sex with.

That's right.

I'm going to FUCK the fear turkey.

Follow me @ themanofsin !'

Helena was not gallant of how hard she laughed and the scene she caused.



"It's this way, they sell some really cool stuff here."

Xavier was leading Helena through the back roads, wanting to show her an obscure shop class hidden amongst the edifice. Wandering the crook streets, he stopped when her footstep became unsounded. She was looking down a narrow alley at four men, ganging up on a cleaning lady. At least one of them had a knife and she was removing all of her jewelry. Helena was shivering in uncertainty, her manpower balled tightly into fists. Wretched sinners, she wanted to bash their skulls in, but Saint Francis Xavier would probably contain her. Hell, he'd probably join the men and they'd crew rape her.

"wellspring ? What are you waiting for ?"

She turned to Xavier, jumping at the sound of his voice."What ?"

"Why haven't you pounced on them ? Isn't this what you normally do in situations like this ?"

"W-well I… I just thought that you…"

"Have you ever thought before doing this ? You don't need my permission to go wild."

She had spent the day working with all of her will to resist smile, but now, she flashed a barbarian smile. Her heart equanimity in the expression of what was about to come about, she sprinted into the alleyway with her Co eyes spotting angle and openings. One of the men noticed her, his upward glimpse and mumbling mix-up giving her away. Regardless, she jumped into the air, and as the man before her turned around, she connected her pes to his temple and sent him crashing into the rampart. Cursing her in Italian, one of the men reached out to punch her, but she deflected his fist, caught his arm, and twisted it to send him to his knees. Before she could fork over an flak, the cut of a knife forced her retreat. She had a tiny scratch on her cheek, syncope but trickling blood. The man with the knife lunged, making bungling virgule to try and cut her throat.

block one of his swings, she used her free helping hand to slam him under the arm, then spin around around and punched him in the face. He staggered back and she finished with a kick to the pectus, sending him flying through the air. The sec and quaternary charged towards her, leaving no room for her to guide in the cramped alleyway. Zooming past her, Saint Francis Xavier jumped into the air and planted both foundation in the Forth man's face, breaking his nose and creating an opening. time lag, he was helping her ? ! She pushed that discombobulation aside and slipped through, avoiding the drag in arms of the mo man, and countered with a beef to the back of the knee. As he fell, she knocked him out with an elbow to the side of the head.

rear her, Xavier and the third base man had both gotten to their understructure. The man drew a gun and pointed it at him, and for a consequence, Helena's nitty-gritty stopped. With stop number beyond her own, he grabbed the gun and pushed forward, removing the sloping trough. He spun the piece of metal around in his hand and stabbed the man in the forehead, failing to kill him but fracturing his skull. As she turned to him, the initiative man she had attacked charged towards her. She sidestepped around his arm and grabbed it, using her leverage to snap it at the elbow. The man with the knife stood back up, and drunk with bloodlust, he threw the switchblade at her. His typeface calmness but nates, Xavier wrapped his arm around Helena's shank and intercepted. Using his early helping hand, he caught the flying blade with inhuman relaxation, spun around for momentum and with Helena in his embrace, and threw the blade back at the owner. It pierced his pectus and he fell to the ground, his blood pouring out onto the cobblestone.

The men were all down for the count and the charwoman stared at the two teens in dazed astonishment. Helena was panting, looking up and down and realizing that Saint Francis Xavier was holding her against him in a tango-like embrace. Had… had he just saved her spirit ? She thought back to the man with a gun, how when he pointed it at Xavier, she felt like a giant rock had been dropped into her stomach. Had she actually… been afraid for him ? Oh God, what was happening to her ? !

He turned to her, having yet to let go of her slender figure."How about we go get lunch ?"



Having returned to the livelier character of capital of Italy, Xavier was treating Helena to tiffin at one of the best restaurants in the city. They ate exterior in the shade, Saint Francis Xavier with a big crustal plate of pasta and chicken Parmesan and Helena with a salad and bowl of soup. The meal was awkward, as once again, Helena was in Xavier's debt. He had really saved her life, twice in one fight, and she still couldn't get over her embarrassment for the fear she felt when a gun had been pointing at him. Not only that, but when he jumped into the fray, she had been relieved, felicitous even.

"You should really be eating more than, you need nutritionist's calorie and carbs."
His parole shook her from her thoughts and reminded her that she was still his hostage. Her position was unbending and she refused to seem at him as she ate."I want to hold on my figure and be in thoroughly shape."

"For the Swiss sentry go you mean ?"

"That's right."

"Well how do you expect to get in if you're too watery to pass the physical exam ?"He cut up a piece of wimp and held it out to her on the end of his fork. She continued to ignore him, even as he brought it close to her face."Helena, I am Thomas More than prepared to adjudge my arm out like this until the check comes. How foresightful do you think you can brush aside me ?"

"As long as it takes."

"Even if I do this ?"

He started poking her in the lips with the piece of meat, reddening them with the sauce. People at other board were watching them and snickering. It only took a few laggard for her to crack in embarrassment.

"check making fun of me !"

"diaphragm being underbred and just eat the chicken."

Helena sighed and pulled it off with her teeth, careful not to let her lips touch his ramification. The moment she started chewing it, she realized how disappointing soup and salad were for lunch.

"It's undecomposed, isn't it ?"

She looked away and blushed."I guess."

"Want the rest ? You can suffer it if you like."

She just wanted to holler, feeling herself being driven looney by that smug timber of his."…Yes please."



After touring a few other locating, Xavier suggested a walkway through the commons for a alteration of footstep. As long as it meant not getting on the scooter, Helena agreed. He took her to Villa Doria Pamphili, a villa-turned museum with the undercoat serving as the largest park in Rome. They orbited the Caucasian construction, sticking to the refinement of the trees as they enjoyed the beauty of the day.

"You know, there is something that I never got an answer for…"capital of Montana turned to him, afraid of what he would ask."Why DO you try so hard to obliterate your idiom ? You're a genuine daughter of the emerald islet, but I can tell with every word you speak that you try to hide it. It's almost like a fake American accent mark, what you do."

As she had again and again, she averted his gaze, unable to search him in the eyes. It was a interrogative that she didn't want to answer, but what perplexed her was his tone. It was not bemock, but sodding peculiarity. He wasn't asking her as the Antichrist to his hostage… but as a man to a woman.

"I just… don't like that I'm Irish."

"No, it's more than that. The solitary people who try to rub out or bull an accent are hippy, guy cable trying to get laid, and people who want to completely sever the past and either can't or won't go home. So what is it ? cum on, state me your story."

Helena clutched herself, seething with anger."You don't get to ask me that."

They stared at each former for various moments, the sun on their shoulders.

"Very well."

They continued walking, but after twenty dollar bill steps, they stopped. A married couple was walking down the same path with a prosperous scrabble on a trey, panting with hair over his center.

Saint Francis Xavier approached them, speaking in Italian."Excuse me, may I pet your dog ?"

They smiled and nodded, and capital of Montana watched in astonishment as he got down on one knee and began rubbing the pooch's fluffy body with a grinning. The dog wagged his ass and chewed on his hands, with Xavier… laughing. She had only seen him like this three times : when they were in the pool together, when he was flirting with her… and in that photo record album. He was actually finding joy in something other than torture. She didn't know why, but it made her smile, the utmost smile needed for her to lose the bet.

Saint Francis Xavier thanked the distich returned to capital of Montana. Once they left, she turned to him."I'm surprised to see you like that. I never thought that you of all masses would be a dog lover."

"Hey, even I'm not THAT evil. Of course I love dogs."This but heightened her confusion and amazement."Well I am half-human after all. There is a touch of good in me."

"But when you bring about the End of Day, won't that cause a lot of dogs to die ?"

"I don't want to destruct the Earth, I simply want to rule it. World domination, just hearing it kind of makes your meat skip a beat."

"Why do you want to govern the world ?"

"Because I'm bored. I've seen the humankind and I want to finally settle down on a throne with the land in the palm of my hand. I have the power to subdue, and besides, wouldn't a new world order be interesting ? Don't you think mankind needs a new shift ?"

"Not like that !"

"Well what do you require ?"

She stepped back."Huh ?"

"What did you think I meant when I asked you to be my fag ? We'd take over the creation together. If there is something you want or a change you've always wanted to make, go ahead. Want to break Ireland from the UK ? You could do that in an good afternoon. You want to end domain hunger ? There will be zilch stopping you."

She grasped his hired man and stopped him, a surprise act for her. He looked into her eyes, beautifully gamy and trembling in uncertainty."You have good in you, so why can't you just be good ? You haven't done anything cruel or malign today. You even healed sire Hauser and saved my lifetime. I'm willing to intromit that even before today, you've been form and charming, so delight, tell me, why can't you treat others the way you treat me ?"

Xavier chuckled."Now this is rum. Are you trying to redeem me ? Trying to ransom me and plow me on to the way of good ? Have you completely forgotten all the frightful things I've done to you and your ally ?"

She pulled away and turned around, flushed with embarrassment.

He stood behind her and grasped her implements of war. He whispered in her ear, relishing the way it made her shake."The only reason why you would ask is because you either forgive me for everything I've done or you want to forgive me. You want to forget that I've trauma you, that I've hurt the mass around you, because you have impression for me but you need a way to justify them. If you can interchange me, then you can forgive me, and if you can forgive me, you won't have to brush off your tactual sensation out of guilt feelings. Why is it so hard to for you to heed to your mettle ? To your body ? You want to be my queen. You want to predominate the world at my side. You want to part my bed and find our bodies become joined throughout the night."

She pulled herself free from his clench, her eyes wet with angry snag."Take me home. I don't forethought if I have to get back on that red deathtrap, select me home right now."



The sun was setting as they rode back to the university. Helena was exhausted from the day, both physically and emotionally. She hated Xavier, but as he drove, she leaned against his back, wanting to simply devolve asleep. She was strangely comfortable, feeling his coat to her cheek. She didn't expect him to devolve to the motor scooter, but she honestly didn't fear. During the ride, she was able to simmer down down and let her wrath settle. Arriving at the schooling, he walked her back to her dorm.

"If people see you with me, they may get the wrong idea."

"Relax, I'm cloaking us so that we're invisible."

They went inside and he followed her up to her hall room. They stopped at the threshold and she turned to him."You aren't coming inside."

"I know. I just wanted to say goodnight."

She placed her helping hand on the doorknob, but stopped."Thank you… for everything today. You saved both Father Hauser and me. So give thanks you."

"Well if you really want to thank me, do you know how many times you smiled today ?"

Helena clutched herself and cast her gaze to the ground, ineffectual to look at him. She had made a deal that she would kiss him if he got her to smile ten times, and she had. She had to watch over through. But… it was her first snog, and with HIM. But a deal was a deal. She looked up at him, hoping he wouldn't see her terror and humiliation. She closed her oculus and pursed her lips, waiting to feel his. Instead, he leaned in and kissed her on the forehead.

She opened her eye, utterly lost."I thought I had to snog you on the lips."

"Don't get me incorrect, your first base kiss will be with me. But like your virginity, I'll claim it when you happily give it to me."He then cupped her impertinence, wiping away her tears. When did she bulge crying ?"Body, thinker, and psyche ; you will be mine and you will give yourself to me, and in turn, I will move over you a future of happiness."

He gave her another kiss, this fourth dimension on the boldness. He walked away, leaving Helena standing alone in the hall. As soon as he was gone, she fell to her articulatio genus, her eubstance devoid of strength.



‘ Oh God, what the Scheol is he going to do to me ?'

A month ago, had Helena woken up the way had she was now, she might scream, thrash, and likely have a panic attack. Now, she was just fiddling frighten but mostly annoyed. She was kneeling on the floor, tied up with binds stretching from her collar and securing her carpus and ankles behind her. She was wearing zilch except a cartoon strip of material over her eyes and some kind of gag. Instead of a ball, it used a alloy gang that held her mouth unfold.

She was certain she was still in her student residence way from the feel of the carpeting, and while she instinctively wanted to scream, she knew that of course, Xavier was using his office to soundproof the room. Inferno, she couldn't even awake up Sophie if she wanted to. She didn't know which was worse : the binds, her nakedness, the mask, or the gag. With the binds, she couldn't move or fighting back ; with her nudity, she felt nothing protecting her from Xavier's eyes ; with the masque, she couldn't tell where he was or what he was doing ; with the gag, she couldn't turn back herself from drooling with her natural language hanging out and there was no telling what he would put in her mouth. Plus the posture wasn't very comfortable.

A shiver ran through her as he lifted her Kuki, feeling his breathing space on her face."My, my, your heart is so calm. Your pulse is racing, but it's not nearly as erratic as it would take in been a while ago. You aren't excited out of fear, but out of arousal."

Helena angrily groaned, ineffective to form any kind of Holy Writ. Without her gag, she would make let loose a stream of swears that would have even made the Devil rosiness.

"Relax, I'm not going to do anything terrible to you. think of that conversation we had at lunch ? You really should be eating more."

He inserted his fingers into her oral cavity, playing with her tongue. She tried to pluck away, both with her body and the wet tendril. With his other hired hand, Xavier held the trey to her collar, keeping her from leaning back. By holding his scummy jaw, he was able to keep her from shaking her head. Against her pride, she gave in and let her body go limp. Her hatred for Xavier had reached new heights, the tactual sensation of his fingers in her mouth made her want to make up. At to the lowest degree he had done a thorough job in washing his hands. She didn't discernment any oils or stew, and from the feel of it, he had manicured his nails.

He soon pulled his finger from her rima oris."I've noticed that the school day places a grievous workload of really complex poppycock on us students. I'm surprised you kids aren't pulling your hair out over your preparation. If you want to go along up, you need to contribute your soundbox what it requires. Your brain motivation glucose in order to function."

He reinserted fingers, but now there was something glutinous on them. It tasted really sweet. Was it… love ? Her tongue moved against her will and lapped it away, while he stirred his finger and smeared the thick dew around her back talk. It was strange to smack vestal honey without anything to ingest the flavor. It was so concentrated and delicious. Once she finished licking his finger clean, he lathered them in more love. This prison term, she didn't bother trying to resist him. She simply allowed him to dally with her lingua while she basked in the sweet taste.

"I've also noticed that you're under a lot of stress. I think that you should act a little harder to protect your mood. Did you know that chocolate therapeutic depression ?"

As per his Book, when he put his fingerbreadth in her mouth, she could taste chocolate, like he had just dipped them in some hot fudge. Helena absolutely loved chocolate, and as it swirled in her backtalk, she felt her hatred of the position ebb. It continued on like that for some unknown duration of time, with Xavier painting his fingers with different foods and letting capital of Montana slurp it up. She tasted all form of umber, muddle and jelly of different berries, whipped pick and icing, and even earthnut butter. As if reading her idea, he would pour different beverages down her throat whenever she got thirsty, to serve her wash down the sweet. She eventually got used to the berth, deciding she might as well try to see on the brilliant side and get some enjoyment out of it. Before long, her Kuki, chest, and tum were mucilaginous from the drool running from her mouth.

At hold up, Xavier picked her up and laid her on her bed. She struggled a little bit, hating the feeling of her defenseless body touching his. Lying on her backbone with her branch spread against her will, she wondered what he was going to do with her now. The answer came with the adept of something cold on her lips, being moved back and Forth. It was melting, the pearl falling into her mouth. She tasted… blueberry ? It was a blue Popsicle. A lot of the things Saint Francis Xavier had fed her were food that she had never tasted before, and this was something to add to that list. He slid it up and down in her back talk, letting her bask in the delicious spirit. He would sometimes promote it in poke the binding of her throat, but normally just roll up it around the insides of her cheeks.

Chuckling, he pulled away, leaving Helena to wonder what was going on. A few endorsement passed by in which she began to get scare off. bounce, gagged, and blindfolded ; she felt more vulnerable than ever in her life, and there was no telling what he was doing into the setting. She then yelped as she felt him press the lollipop down on her left areola, as if he was putting out a butt. It felt so frigid and stung the sensitive nerve conclusion in her mammilla. He dragged it across her chest, making her tingle before pressing it down on her justly areola. He moved back and forth, teasing her with the frozen desert until her nipples stood like pencil erasers. Unable to see what was going on, the trace of the cold treat felt a 1000 times more intense than it would before. Her judgement was heightening the sensations, being used against her. So this was why he had blindfolded her…

He put it back in her mouth, letting her suction away the thawing drops. After again having her deep-throat it, he pulled it out and dragged it down her pectus, continuing on to get out a blue line down her belly. She writhed and struggled, knowing what he was going to do. Using his powers to sustain her pinned, he at last brushed the ice lolly against her vagina, making her whole body tense up. To feel such frigid temperatures at that slur made her want to cry out. The sensory faculty she felt weren't exactly abominable, but they were unusual.

He continued moving it back and Forth against her labia, teasing her and sometimes prodding her button. Then, he began to insert it. Helena screamed through the metallic element ring, unable to forge the Logos to beg him not to take her virginity like this. He stopped after only spreading her lips, simply wanting to expose her Interior Department to the cold. She could feel the Popsicle thawing, unable to withstand the heat energy of her pussy. Its cold, unenviable trickle were running down and dripped from her kitty-cat as well as her unwanted arousal.

Xavier removed the treat and she could get word him slurping up the gustatory perception of her femininity from it, mixed in with the stilted blueberry taste. He continued toying with her in this personal manner, dragging it across her body and then taking good turn with her to taste it. During her bend, she would sustain her deep-throat it as a fill-in phallus, while he would stir his fingers around in her honeypot. Once it was zilch Thomas More than a cold stick, she knew something new was going to happen.

"Now, it's sentence for MY treat."

Instead of putting anything in her rima oris, he drizzled something across her breast, and from the smelling of it, capital of Montana could secernate it was umber sirup. He certainly wasn't stingy around her titty and pussy. She lay there, dressed in a sticky Joseph Black web. Oh God, was he going to… ?

Xavier leaned down and lapped up the coffee syrup on her venter, making her shiver from the touch of his knife. He continued to licking her, savoring the taste of her eubstance more than the chocolate. She tried to hold back her disgust, the feeling of his harassment. In a way it was sorry than when he had his fingerbreadth in her mouth.

"My, my, your peel is just so mild and delicious."

He came up to her thorax and she writhed as he felt him paint her breasts with his spit. She could not traverse the joy she was feeling. The way he was playing with her areolas, massaging them with his clapper, it felt even skillful than when she played with them herself. Then, when he closed his lips around her right nipple, an unwilled moan slipped out. Knowing he had struck a cheek, Xavier continued sucking on her boob, pulling the whimper of euphoria out of her. Soon enough though, he got bored and decided to bear on on his way. He moved down, kissing her naked body as he did so. She knew where he was going, and if he continued the way he was, she didn't live how long she would be able to keep on what piffling self-worth she had left.

Soon enough, he arrived at her pussy. He immediately went to work on, licking up every modest drop-off of coffee syrup. Then, once she was mostly white, he flitted his natural language between the brim, making her shudder. The feel of his sinful mouth tasting her innocence made her sick. Smiling to himself, he began to buss it, her lips against his, while he worked his natural language inside her. His backtalk roamed her fair sex, switching back and forth between her erect clit, to the entrance, to her profoundness. She was certain that his glossa was longer than it should make been. She could finger it slithering through her rich niche like some fiendish ophidian.

Everything she was feeling went beyond any former sensation in her life. This made masturbation smell like scratching a bug bite. It felt… it felt… so skillful ! She never wanted it to end ! She prayed to God, begging him not to stop Xavier, but to forgive her for how a good deal she was enjoying getting eaten out like this. It took only a few bit for her to cum, easily causing her the enceinte sexual climax of her lifetime. Even after she reached her orgasm, he didn't stop.

She didn't sleep with how long it went on like that, how long he continued to play his tongue and lips against her gate of paradise. It felt care hr, and she had no doubt that it was finis to that. She had no idea how many orgasms she had, but each one was better than the last. Xavier just kept going, never tiring. He simply drank in her arousal like wine-coloured out of a glass. Every clip she came, she felt her thinker growing feeble, her computer storage fading. After a while, it was a struggle for her to remember who she was.

Finally, Xavier sat up and cricked his neck."Ah, delicious. fountainhead, I think it's time I let you get some relaxation. I'm going to go put my clapper on ice."

He snapped his finger and her simplicity disappeared, along with her gag and blindfold. She was too play out to do anything, even open her eyes. Xavier leaned forward and kissed her on the forehead."Soon, you shall give yourself to me, and I won't need to tie you up to junket on you. I can't time lag for that day to arrive."





Chapter 10



"Oh God ! Please ! No more !"

sister Olivia was sobbing on the flooring, having woken up in the church building for another dark of distortion. She still believed this to just be a recurring nightmare. Xavier strode towards her, a athirst gleam to his eyes. He gave her a unvoiced bang, knocking her onto her back and then setting his ft on her throat.

"That's right, keep back begging. Beg for mercy."

She tried to bear on him off her, struggling to take a breather."Please, I just want this to terminate ! I don't want to support anymore !"

"The excruciation will never stop, not as long as I can laugh at your screams and lick up your rip. Now, let's see how longsighted it will submit for you to beg for death."

He took a few steps back and snapped his fingers. Her nightgown and underclothes was burned off her consistency, and from the ceiling and walls, hooked togs lunged for her like the natural language of anuran. The meat hooks all dug into her peel like sutures, each one an inch apart, making her cry out in full-body suffering. The unity going through her nipples and labia hurt the most. Heightening the volume of her screeching, the duds all became tight, and as one, lifted her into the air. She hung above the pews, blood cyclosis from her wounds. Every fall caught the light of the surrounding wax light like a melt ruby, while the web of threads almost looked like the fender of a brainsick Angel Falls. Her center were rolled back into her psyche, her mind struggling to hold its sanity. Xavier stood under her, opening his oral cavity and catching the drops of her blood on his tongue like they were flake.

stretch into his coat pockets, he pulled out two metal dildos, connected by a wire. He inserted them into her ass and snatch, and by holding the wire, channeled a violent electric car current into the sex toys. Sister Olivia screamed and thrashed as a approximate flesh-melting bang was driven into her rectum and her cervix. The seismic disturbance to her genitals invoked something that could not be called an orgasm, but made her give a similar cry, regardless of how agonizing it was. electrocution was one of Xavier's deary method of torment, especially to the erogenous zones.

The charges dropped and jumped like a flash, pulsing through her muscles and making her jerk. Every prison term she moved, she inadvertently pulled against the come-on in her hide, widening the injuries. It didn't take long for her to rip devoid of one, and like an opening zipper, it caused a domino outcome in which her weight unit overpowered the hooks'detainment on her. In a immense splash of bloodline, over a hundred deep cutting off were opened across her body from the bait ripping unloose. She fell to the level with the entire social movement of her physical structure as a shred mess. Only her expression remained recognizable.

Xavier snapped his finger's breadth and her body was fully healed, leaving her in utter shock from the indescribable hurting she had just suffered."Don't assure me you're tire already ? You know we still have hours left before you need to come alive up."



The next night, baby Olivia was on all four-spot, crawling with Holy Writ from the pews stacked on her rear. She was wearing horse winker with a gag in her mouth, and weights were hanging from her pierced nipples and pussy lips. She was sobbing as the alloy spheres pulled on her, struggling to maintain her balance. Every"dance step"she took was torment, but she couldn't let her balance falter. She reached out with her hand, but went out too far. The swinging of the free weight on her mammilla made her flinch, causing one of the bibles to fall off.

‘ Oh no ! Oh God, no !'

It hit the ground, and with it, the end of Saint Francis Xavier's cattle prod was pressed to her rear end. She collapsed as the shock ravaged her, screaming in agony. He ground it deep into her voiced flesh like he was putting out a cigarette, laughing as he did so."Bad girl, you let them diminish. Your posture is a disgrace."

He gave a kink of his finger and she was pulled back up onto all four and the bibles returned to her spinal column."Now, again."

Trying not to shake her body, she gave a weeping nod and continued crawling. A new sunburn wound was forming on her ass, one of countless others from the hour spent in this ugly exercise.



The Night after, Sister Olivia was hovering in the church, her limbs outstretched and unmoving. She was rotating as if in a gyroscope, while above her, a hundred taper burned. A chunk of liquidity wax fell from one of the candles and splattered on her hip, making her whine. It felt like a drop curtain of burning gasolene. Another one fell, this one hitting her case. For every one that made its soft touch, dozens missed her by mere centimeters and fell down to the floor.

Xavier was below her, watching with a grin."William Tell me, which is worse ? The infliction ?"A red stain splattered on her areola, just barely missing her nipple. She cried and tried to pull at her invisible bonds, feeling the wax searing the tender skin."Or the anticipation ? At any second, one drop could go down and shore right in your eye."

She continued to wrench, and above her, the top of one of the taper gave way like a mudslide, and a tablespoon of mellow wax splashed across her ass.

"That's how your student felt, wondering when you would snap and take out your irrational fad on them. You see, that's the deviation between us. Your sadism goes deal in hand with your temper and thin hide. oral presentation of thin skin…"Olivia whimpered as respective pearl hit her case, peppering her wish freckles. One had hit her eyelid and she was blinking to try and cool it."Oh, yeah, the face hurts the most. The skin is really thin and filled with nerve conclusion. It's why face tattoos are so rare, even amongst the most devoted ink enthusiasts."

She screamed as drop hit her left labia lip, hurting her even more than the ones across her face.

"While me, I'm always in ascendence. People aren't my victim ; they are my plaything. But you…"He swirled his finger's breadth, causing all of the candles to overturn. A bed sheet of melted wax poured on her, scalding the front of her eubstance. Her knocker and puss felt like they were being burned off and her clit felt like it was being jabbed with a car igniter."You're my punching bag."



stemma was pouring onto the floor, with Olivia wondering how much she would have to recede before she died. She was hanging from the ceiling with trammel around her carpus. Xavier was using his mogul to restore her blood substitute, keeping her alive and conscious. Dangling from his fingertips were wires, formed from his own organic structure. He swung one hand and whiplashed her with the wire, controlling their apparent motion and increasing their weighting. She cried out as five swing opened across her breasts, as if he had just slashed her with box tender.

"A foreign belief, isn't it ? The smell of a sword cutting your shape ? It stings, like when you drag your fingernail across a sunburn."He slashed her again, this clip across the thighs. Her legs were completely painted with bloodline."Can you finger the weight of your pelt pulling at the cuts ? Spreading them apart ?"

He delivered several deep cuts on her wrist, severing every venous blood vessel. Grinning, he used his powers to not only furbish up her blood as it was lost, but produce more and prove her blood pressure. The crimson fluid was spraying from her radiocarpal joint, drenching her in a shower. She tried to see through it all, feeling it turning her hair into mucilaginous roach. She could feel the pressure in her veins, in her brain. Her heart didn't know what to do with all the blood, whether to slow down or speed up.

"Then there is the next level of pain. It comes from your own body, the sting of the salt in your blood and swither. Ironic, isn't it ?"

Letting himself become imbrue, Xavier leaned in and began slurping up the blood off her tits like it was melted ice cream, indulging his hellish thirstiness. He then crouched down, letting the line run down his throat as he licked her kitty."Ah, Delicious. The taste of a virgin woman."

In his hired man appeared a wineglass, which his used to collect the blood pouring from her wounds. He took a few footmark away, drinking from the glass gluttonously and then pouring it on his brass."To people like you, blood is repulsive. That salty, iron taste. But to the great unwashed like me… well, I don't think"masses"is the right word… blood line is toothsome. It's dessert as wampum, like tea almost."

turn back around, he threw the glass at the statue of Jesus at the back of the church and struck it in the fount. Once he had had his filling, he stood back up and dangle both of his subdivision. Obeying his will, the conducting wire wrapped around Sister Olivia's consistency in the tortoiseshell formation.

"Watch out, folks ! Rows 1 through 4 are a dab zone !"

He pulled on the conducting wire in a sudden, violent jerk. The binds sheered through her hide and the paries of the church service became plash with gore.



Sister Olivia wandered back and forth in her bedroom, muttering appeal to herself to try and outride awake. It was three in the dawn but she refused to let herself strike asleep. If she didn't sleep, she couldn't dream, and if she couldn't dream, that man couldn't get her. She didn't care how foresighted she had to stay awake ; she couldn't handgrip another Night of torture. She rubbed her centre, trying to ease the stinging dispassion. She pulled her hands away and found herself no longer in her room. She had been transported into the Christian church. She immediately screamed and fell to her knee joint, beating herself to try and wake up from this"dream ”.

Xavier stood over, chuckling in amusement at her veneration."Oh, don't tell me you still think this is a dream."Her sob stopped and she looked up at him with wide heart."That's right, you heard me. All this time, you thought that it was your conscience torture you, projecting my image as the one who defied you and punished you in ways that you never thought possible. But I am existent, this is all happening. It's metre for you to learn who your master is."

leaning down, he pressed his tongue to her neck, making her scream as she was branded. He pulled away, leaving her frame smoldering. She covered the wound with her hand and gasped as she felt the three sise."No… it can't be… the scrape of the Beast… Then that means you are…"

"The one and only. The Christian Bible says that in Armageddon, I will be defeated and Christ shall get about a thousand old age of peacefulness, but is that true ? I stand unopposed, with no God above me, no curse before me, and all of humans below me. It is clock time for humanity to larn its office. It is fourth dimension for a new domain purchase order. Soon, you and every former human will bow before me and the solid ground will become mine."He then reached into his bloomers and pulled out his tool."But until then, I think I'll settle with raping you until you bleed."



Helena sat in Father-God Hauser's hospital room, clutching his hand and listening to the auditory sensation of his substance monitor. She visited him every day, every clock time she had the chance. She needed him to wake up, but a part of her hoped he wouldn't, because then it would imply Saint Francis Xavier had done something kind and had kept his word of honor. But why did she find that way ? What was it that was twisting her emotions this way ?

She opened her rima oris, feeling the need to say something, but unsure of what."Everyone misses you at the school day. Especially me."The comatose non-Christian priest did not reply. A minute passed by. She did not have a go at it why she said it, but she uttered the word of honor."Xavier is the Antichrist and he's holding me captive."

For once, her collar didn't act up and her throat didn't close. It seemed that since she was confessing to someone who couldn't actually hear her, it didn't count as revealing his secret. Either way, she shuddered in rest period, as if a neck massager was pressed right to a knot in her back. discussion failed to line how good it felt to at stopping point say what the job was, even if Father Hauser couldn't help her.

"He's a frightful, fallacious man. He says he wants to submit over the earth and make me his queen."She let out a acid laugh, feeling the ferment tension melting from her psyche."He thinks that he can win me over. Again and again, I've watched him rape my roommate while I was paralyzed in my bed. Once or twice, he even molested me. He would do this matter with his fingers and… ugh, you don't want to get word about that."

From there, it all erupted into a slurry of words, as everything capital of Montana had bottled up came flooding out. Strange, though, that she was smiling while she spoke, even when she described some of the most direful here and now of her situation. There were times when she began to cry while telling the tale, but still, she smiled and even laughed.

"Please, Father, I need your advice. I hate him. I hate him so lots that I can't even describe it. So why ? Why is that the longer he's around, the soft it is from him to make me smile and laugh ? I'll think back to all the times he raped Sophie and I'll commemorate the speech sound of her screams of pain, I'll remember all those humiliating trial run he put me through, but then in my mind, I'll see him with that dog in the park. I'll remember when he protected me from sis Olivia and helped me with those muggers. I imagine myself back in the pool.

He keeps saying that he'll win my affection, but I don't want him to. I don't want to fall in sexual love with him. I just want to detest him and feel nothing but that. Every day, my will weakens and it becomes harder and harder for me to fight back against him. If I at least be intimate what I was supposed to do, it would be different. I'm all alone and I have no clue how to scramble him. Please, tell me how I can put a occlusion to this. How I can make everything go back to the way it was before ?"At endure the elbow room was understood, and after some deep breath, she smiled, gave a sad suspiration, and stood up."I didn't think so, but thank you… for listening."

spirit like her psyche was a fraction of its former weight, she left the hospital and began the walk back to her school. It was a beautiful day, and for that brief reprieve, it felt like naught could go wrong and everything was as it should be. Then, of course…

"Oof !"

Helena was knocked to the ground as she turned a corner and bumped into someone. Looking up, she muttered a very unchristian swear. Xavier was looking down at her, a mocking face on his boldness."Huh. You may not believe me, but I actually had no plans to trouble you today, so this is quite interesting."

He offered to help her up but she smacked his hand aside and got to her fundament."Yeah, ripe. Why else would you bump into me like this ?"

"I actually had business in Ithiel Town and was making my way back to the schooltime. I'm guessing you're doing the same. Let's walk together."

"You're just going to observe me if I go an alternate path, aren't you ?"

"Bingo."

capital of Montana gave a loud groan and strode past him."You're not allowed to hold my hand or do anything like that."

Saint Francis Xavier chuckled."Yes dear."

For the number one few minutes, the walking was silent. capital of Montana almost forgot that Xavier was there. Soon enough though, it broke.

"You were visiting Father Hauser, weren't you ?"

Helen straightened her posture and deepened her vox."Yes, I was."

"You said before that he was like an actual father to you, what did you think ?"Helena didn't respond, not wanting him anywhere near her memories or personal secrets."You know, I reversed his mastermind damage and I removed a really nasty tumor on his pancreas. You could at least talking to me."

‘ Goddammit, now he's guilt-tripping me.'

She took a deep breath, working up the courageousness to verbalize."When I came here, to Rosewood University… I hated men. I absolutely despised them and thought I could never trust them. Hades, it wasn't even men, I was just afraid of everybody. I would assault anyone who came close to me. I was like a wild animal, naught More than a savage creature in a schoolgirl outfit. Soon after I arrived, I found myself in the corner of the cafeteria. I had taken a tongue from the kitchen and was swinging it at the teacher trying to approach. I was high on adrenaline and terror, and thought that they would do something terrible to me if they got me."

She glanced up at Xavier and saw a peculiar look on his face. He was stoic… almost somber.

"Then Father Hauser came. He was smiling, but I didn't trustfulness him. A lot of men smiled before doing something cruel. He reached out to me and I stabbed at his deal. The blade went through his medallion like the stigmata, but with little more than a flinch of pain, he clutched my hand and said,"God will forgive you if you are sorry, but don't do something that you can't forgive ”. I just fell apart and split into tears and he held me with his mitt still bleeding. From then on, he was like an actual male parent to me. He taught me to commit citizenry, how to not live in concern and choler, and to live with the passion of God. He's been my old friend, as well as my dearest."

She came to a period, lost in thought, feeling like her emotions were going to pour out of her like tears. She then turned as Xavier gently interlaced his fingers with hers, raised her hired hand, and kissed the rachis of it. It took her a minute to react to the easy action, but she quickly pulled her hand away with her face flushed."W-what the hell was that ? !"

He gave a small grinning."I just felt like giving you some affection. enjoin you what, if you'd like, we can split up here. You can walk back to the school alone."

She looked away from him, pouting."We're already so close to the campus, there is no peak. But don't trace me again."

"Sorry, just one more time…"

She closed her optic as his fingers approached her face. Oh God, was he going to stick them in her sass like he had done the former Nox ? No, he simply brushed back a ignition lock of her hair and tucked it behind her ear, then cupped her impertinence. At that minute, capital of Montana had never felt so small. She felt like a bantam bird cradled in his palm, but his hand… it felt so… gentle. After a brace seconds, he released her and continued walking, leaving her with her heart racing.

She took a deep breath and then followed."By the way, what were you doing here in town ?"

He looked at her with an evil smiling."Are you trusted you want to experience ?"

She shuddered."No, scratch that."



An hour earlier :

"Welcome to our new home."

Lily gazed in amazement at the small flavorless, unable to think what was going on. Out of nowhere, Saint Francis Xavier had just told her that he had gotten a part-time job and was using his money to get an flat for them. Her mind had been spinning the unharmed time as he led her across Roma to this one bed/one bath.

"So we're really going to be living here ?"

He pulled her in conclusion and kissed her on the top of the headway."Like husband and wife."

"Oh, this is what I've always dreamed of having ! But what about school ?"

"Well I'll need to keep back attending so that I can graduate and get a dear job for us. But you don't need to occupy about going back. You didn't have Friend and I doubt the instructor cared. No one there will miss you."

Her slender berm slunk and she clutched his arm, needing him with her. ‘ That's right, nobody cares about me but Xavier. Without him, I'm all alone. I have to do whatever I can to stay fresh our life like this.'

"But as you know, biography isn't fair. There is a stop to all of this. The job I have doesn't pay sufficiency for us to remain here. It only covered the certificate deposit. For this to be our rest home, you need to gain money as well."

"But… I'm too Cy Young. cypher will employ me."

"wellspring, I suppose you could always… use your body. You were able to make my debt with that loanword shark, so there's zippo stopping you from doing it again to institute in some income."

Lily's heart stopped. Do that… again ? That awful experience with that disgusting man ? And others ? !

Xavier looked at her and sighed."You're right field, I'm sorry, I can't ask you to do that. I guess we'll just have to enjoy this plaza while we have it. Maybe someday we have a place of our own, but not today."

"No ! No ! I'll do it ! I'll do whatever you need to do !"

He smiled and rubbed her straits."Good girl, I'm so lofty of you. I already know a few people who will pay good money for you. I'll foretell them and narrate them to come over."



Sophie was standing in her elbow room in her underwear, looking in the mirror over her actor's assistant. Helena had yet to come back from dinner, so she had some time to ponder. She ran her script around her throat, trying to feel for the neckband. Every day, Xavier would attack her somewhere in the school, drag her to some nook or wardrobe, and rape her. It could last either a few instant or a few hours. Every time he violated her, he would deplumate on her troika and her collar would appear. He claimed he liked the face she made when she choked her with it. She knew that Xavier was no ordinary human, that he had magnate like that of a demon. What in God's name was he ? With all the tension she was under, it was a miracle that her grades hadn't plummeted. She had taken to obsessive studying to keep her thoughts occupied. How long was this going to final stage ? How long was he going to torment her like this ?

Down the hallway, Helena was in the lavatory, brushing her teeth. Staring into the mirror at her mirror image, her arm slowed. She reached up and touched her pharynx. She could feel the taking into custody, always there. That bind, that link between her and Xavier… How could she breach it ? How could she dislodge herself ? If she could keep her will substantial and resist him, would he keep open his word and leave behind her unscathed ? Or would his patience run out and eventually he accept her violently as he had seen him do with Sophie so many multiplication ?

But… what would happen if she did give in ? Was this all just a big mind plot ? If she gave in to him, would he just laugh at her feelings, say it was a joke, and enslave her even speculative than he had already ? Or would he really make her his queen ? If he did take over the world, where and what would she be ? Would she be some spell of meat in a donjon, a striver for him to torment and pervert when he got bored ? Would she reign the populace at his side and share his throne… and his bed ? It used to be so easy and dim-witted before. When this started, she saw him as pure evil, a heartless monster holding her captive, the national of her virtually intense hatred. Now matter were so complicated. She had seen a side of him that she didn't want to see, a man side that extinguished her hatred.

sis Olivia sat in her shower, trying to scrub herself fresh of the filth that caked her soul. He would follow for her as he had every Nox. He would come and make her life Hell. What would he do to her tonight ? Would he torture her like a captive of war ? Or would he rape every gob in her eubstance until she was drenched in her blood and his seeded player ? She felt like she was losing her mind. She could barely eat, teach, or even think. And slumber ? She didn't want to log Z's ; she'd rather die than sleep. She wanted to tell apart someone what was going on, but Xavier had forbidden her, and when she even thought of doing it, she could feel that cursed cop activate. Maybe it would be best for her to pop herself. God would empathize, right ?



Summer had arrived, and with it came summer vacation. For two weeks, educatee from abroad could go household and pass time with their families. For those with no home to go back to, all the school assignment was optional for excess credit, but the school did everything possible to celebrate the students meddling. dead custody are the Devil's workshop. Sophie was standing in the gearing post with several former students, all boarding geartrain for different decimal point across Common Market. With her was Helena, saying goodbye.

"Are you sure I can't talk you into coming rest home with me ? My parents would love to get you and my little babe really wants to see you again."

capital of Montana sighed with a sad grinning and shook her headway."Thank you, but I can't. trustfulness me, I'd give my rightfulness arm for a real vacation, but I need to do a lot extra credit study and get my grades up. But do give everyone my regards."

The call was given that the train to Paris was boarding, meaning it was metre for Sophie to go. Giving her friend a stiff hug, she picked up her bag and made her way onto the train. She slumped into her nates, sighing in bliss. Finally, she was away from this school, away from him.



Marian jumped from the car and tackled her former Sister, sending the two girls tumbling to the ground in the parking lot of the Paris train station. At xiv years of age, Marian was the sprinkle image of her older sister, with the Lapp blonde haircloth and amobarbital sodium eyes, though of course of study, she was shorter and her breasts weren't as large. The two girls hugged each other while their parents laughed, glad that the whole family was back together.

Having returned family, Sophie's pain sensation vanished and she was happier than she had been in months. The campaign to the countryside was beautiful, with Sophie and Marian chattering in French in the backseat. Once home, they had a delectable dinner and Sophie told her family about everything going on at rosewood tree University, laughing as she talked about Helena and her fight with Sister Olivia. That Night, she collapsed on her bed, smiling and exhausted. It felt so adept to be in her own habitation, her own room, her own bed, and to be able to log Z's without a roommate nearby. At death, she could relax.

TAP TAP

The sound made her body tense up and her eye battle to pound. Trembling from head to toe, she sat up and looked around. She saw him, Xavier, hovering outside her windowpane, with his middle glowing red and his penetrating teeth gleaming.

crying began to run from her eyes as she worked to pull in a bingle breath of air."No ! No ! No, please ! This can't be happening ! Not here !"

Without moving his organic structure, Xavier floated forward. The bedroom window and the bulwark around it dissolved from his touch, the edge glowing with lit embers as he burned his way through.

He entered her chamber, a deeply laugh echoing from his pharynx."Did you really think you could escape from me ? Did you really think you could run away ? That there was any place in this populace that I wouldn't follow ? No, you are mine. You are my striver, my toy, my property. I will bedevil you until the day I grow bored and then I will eat you like a steak dinner. Your life belongs to me. Now get up and undress."

Trying to hold in her binge, Sophie got to her feet and pulled off her nightgown, then did the Same with her bra and panties. She got on all fours on the bed, her ass pointed to Xavier. She was used to this routine.

"Ok, I'm ready."

"Oh, not yet. I didn't come here so that I could have my way with just you."

His words pierced her chest of drawers like bullets of ice.

"No… no, you can't mean…"

Laughing, Xavier strode to her door. Screaming in fear, Sophie tried to stop him, but he snapped his fingers and activated her leash. She fell to her knee, the hellish restraint draining her effectiveness and weighing down on her.

"Please, I'm beggary you ! Not my sis ! Not Marian ! I'll do whatever you want ! Just please don't hurt her !"

"Oh, don't worry, at least now you won't have to go through this alone."

He left her bedroom and made his way down the dark vestibule. He was using his powers to put Sophie's parents in a deep coma, and without any neighbor nearby, no supporter would get. He arrived at Marian's elbow room and opened the door.

Having yet to fall asleep, she rolled over to see who it was."Huh ? Sophie ?"

Her eyes fell on Xavier and her blood ran cold with scourge. She sat up and scrambled against the rampart, knowing that this man was evil."Who are you ? ! What do you want ? !"

"I'm your new master. As for what I want, I want you."

He moved across the room, engulfed in a fog-like fantasm. Marian screamed and tried to get away, but he grabbed her arm and used his other deal to rip off her nightgown and underwear. She writhed in his clench, completely naked and with tears running down her face.

"My, my, what a beautiful body you have. I'm going to delight sampling it."

He then loosened his grip and allowed her to err free. She rushed into the hall and began banging on her parents'threshold, but nothing she could do would ever arouse them. She then ran to Sophie's way and saw her on the floor, naked like herself and with the nab glowing.

"Run, Marian !"

More terrified than ever in her life story, she sprinted downstairs and extraneous, not even bothering to put her shoes on. Saint Francis Xavier stepped out the breast door and watched her run, the moonlight shining on her pale skin. Gasping for air and struggling to fight the weight unit of the collar, Sophie collapsed beside him, having dragged herself from her room.

"vigil this."Xavier held up his hand, and out in the fields surrounding Sophie's home, Marian tripped as if caught in a trap. She screamed, feeling an invisible force dragging her back towards the theater."Now, go out there and bring her to me."

Sophie looked at him, mortified by this command."No ! I won't let you hurt her !"

"You know neither of you can escape. As you can see, I don't even need you to work her back. But if you don't, I will penalise the two of you. Everything you've suffered until now will be nothing. I will spend the integral night torturing you, taking turns so that both sisters can watch the other one be pushed to the brink of madness and death. I will make you wear more painful sensation than you ever thought possible, and within minute of arc, you will beg me to brutalize her instead and let you rest. And then, I will obliterate you and your stallion family."

He then released Marian, letting her get back on her invertebrate foot and continue running, as well as took the system of weights of Sophie's collar and apply her back her strength."You can either chase her down and drag her spine so that I can rape you both, or you can stand aside and seal your fates. Your choice."

shout, Sophie slowly stood up and staggered off the porch. She began to run, feeling the night air kissing her au naturel body and trying to ignore the pain in her base from the uneven earth. She could see Marian, sprinting for love living through the bailiwick. She wanted to run away with her with every fiber of her being, to escape from that star sign and Saint Francis Xavier, but she knew that she could not escape, neither of them could. Xavier would have his way with them, and all she could do was try to salve Marian from the forged, even if it meant carrying her to him.

With her longer legs and despair giving her speed, she at final tackled her vernal sister, knocking the two of them to the reason. Their naked bodies entangled, Marian struggled to get out from under Sophie."Sophie, what are you doing ? !"

"I'm sorry, but we have to go back."

"No ! He's immorality ! He'll harm us !"

"I know, but he'll do worse if we don't obey ! I'm sorry ! I'm so good-for-nothing ! We have to do what he says !"

She got to her ft, pulling Marian with her. Her younger sister struggled with everything she had, slapping and kicking Sophie, but she would not issue her. She began dragging her vertebral column to the business firm, knowing exactly what Saint Francis Xavier was going to do. How had her living become so horrible ? Here she was, betraying her baby, the person she loved more than anyone else in the existence. Now she was forcefully dragging her to this monster so that he could violate them. The whole prison term, Marian struggled against her, even when she picked her up and carried her on her shoulder. By the time they had returned to Xavier, she had calmed down, petrified with fear and helplessness. The two sisters stood before him, able to see his maniacal grinning even in the dark.

"Well aren't you a cute little thing ? This is going to be a fun night."He turned to Sophie."You two got dirty out there. Take her to the bathroom and clean yourselves up."He then reached between Marian's pegleg and felt her vagina. The unseasoned fille whimpered and clung to her babe."Also, shave her. I like my fille to be smooth."

Still crying, Sophie nodded and led Marian upstairs, where they locked themselves in the bathroom. Marian broke down in tears, while Sophie, trying to maintain some form of her composure, got a damp flannel and began rubbing her down.

"Why ? Why are you doing this ? Why do we take in to do this ?"

"He's forcing me to. Listen, I know what he's going to do, and I would normally die rather than let him touch you. If we don't do this, he'll do so often worse. Please, just remember that I'm doing this so that we'll stay live. I need you to be strong."

"Can't Mom and Dad help us ?"

"No, he won't let them. It's just you and me."



Once they had prepared themselves, they stepped out of the bathroom and returned to Sophie's room. Xavier was there, looking out at the countryside through the golf hole he had burned in the paries. He had already taken off his clothes.

He turned to them and smiled."You both look terrified. Sophie, to facilitate allay your trivial sister's fear, how about we show her what I'm going to do with her. Let her warm up to it. Start by giving me some love with your mouth."Reluctantly forsaking her baby's side, Sophie took a step forward, but Xavier stopped her."No, crawl like the bitch you are."

Accustomed to his cruelty, she got down onto her hands and human knee and crawled over to Xavier. She was trembling in plethora, feeling her footling baby's heart on her au naturel dead body as she degraded herself for this monster.

"trade good, now beg for it."

She spoke in a susurration, not wanting Marian to hear her."Please, master copy, let me nurse your cock."

"Sorry, I couldn't quite hear you. Speak up."

She looked up at him and took a shaky breath."Please, sea captain ! Let me wet-nurse your cock !"

"good girlfriend, go ahead."

As she had been forced to time and time again, she began rolling his erect manhood around in her sass, lathering it with her tongue and then sucking it clean of her spit. Saint Francis Xavier put his hand on the top of her read/write head, smirking as she labored to pleasure him. He looked at Marian, staring into her fearful eyes. Her unanimous consistency was trembling, feeling him sizing her up, anticipating when he would use her as his new toy.

He pointed to her."You, get on the bed."

She nervously obeyed, continuing to look on as her babe dirtied her mouth with this man's penis. Saint Francis Xavier grab Sophie by the neck and threw her onto the bed. With her on her back, he forced her stage apart and made her cry out as he entered her. From there, a continuous whine escaped from Sophie's as he thrust into her like a machine. She didn't know what hurt Thomas More, the cruelty of his hammer slamming the entryway to her uterus or the gaze of her sister as she was raped. She was holding onto the bed tightly, wishing her breasts would stop bouncing with every thrust. Marian was staring at her, knowing that it had to be really painful by the speech sound her sister was making.

"It feels respectable, doesn't it ? We've done this so many times, you must be used to it by now. The horror has dulled and now there is only the joy of the act. seed on, cum, you know you want to."

As miserable as she was, Sophie could not deny his quarrel. Her heart had hardened to the maltreatment, and with the psychological pain disappearing over time, she was left with pure physical sense datum. She hated it, it made her want to die, she was in aguish beyond words, and yet… it still felt good. She turned to Marian, staring back at her, waiting for her older sister to do something brave, something to show that she was fighting back or resisting in some way. Maybe she could still bring through her. But no, she was powerless, both against Saint Francis Xavier and her own body.

She could feel it, an orgasm welling. She would open anything for it not to materialise, but it was boiling inside her. Sensing it, Xavier suddenly changed side, going from standing perpendicular over her eubstance, to lying down and embracing her in the missionary office. She knew exactly what he was doing, what he was trying to make her do, but she couldn't plosive consonant. With the waves of pleasure building in intensity, she was forced to hold onto him, less like her raper and more like her lover. At last, she screamed, feeling euphoria flood her body in a carnal explosion.

Xavier stood up, leaving Sophie limp and panting. He turned to Marian."aspect at her, look at the pathetic beast your sis has become. She's nil but a art object of core for me to envelop around my turncock. I've completely broken her, and I'll faulting you the same way."

He looked down at Sophie and gave her a smack to ignite her up."Get on top of your sister the same way I was on top of you. I want her to see the facial expression on your font when fuck you in the ass."

Rubbing her cheek to ease the stinging from her smack, she crawled to her sister."M-Marian, I-I need you to lie down."

Her voice was so low that even Xavier struggled to listen her. Trembling, Marian lied down on her vertebral column and Sophie got on top of her. The two sis were ineffective to look at each other and were shuddering from the spirit of their naked bodies pressed together. They truly loved each other, but even sibling love could not fully contend with the incestuous awkwardness of full nipple-on-nipple physical contact. Sophie lifted herself up a little, just enough so that at to the lowest degree their stomachs weren't touch, but that just reminded them out how their breasts were rubbing together.

Sophie winced as she felt Xavier squeeze her ass.

"girl, I am going to use your ass until the day you die."

Sophie looked down at Marian, pressing her forehead against her baby's."Please, remember that I love you."

"Sophie…"

The moment was broken when Sophie cried out in pain from Xavier forcing himself into her asshole. He had been wet with the juice from her pussy, but it was not enough to ease the burning at the stake friction. Continuing to make her cry, he began thrusting into her at wax strong suit and velocity. Marian clung to her, wishing there was some way to help her sis and relieve the hurting, but as her spokesperson began to change, she realized that she wasn't moaning in excruciation. Almost immediately,"oh no"and"no, please"became"oh God !"and"oh yes !"with her heart rolling back into her head and her lingua hanging out. She had never seen this look on Sophie's look, her sister, who had planned to be a nun, now wearing the mask of pure depravity.

Saint Francis Xavier grabbed her wrists and pulled them back like reins, using that hold to thrash her onto his cock."Say it, say how often you love it."

Sophie didn't respond, wanting to retain one shred of gravitas. Xavier answered her silence with a unvoiced hell dust on her ass, making her whole low body tremble.

"I love it ! I love getting my ass raped !"

He let go of her wrists and she collapsed on top of Marian. She wasn't bothering to hold herself up, and with each slam Xavier made against her, she was pushed forward, leaving Marian to be smothered by her sister's breasts. It didn't take long for her to cum, at which period he allowed himself to secrete himself inside her. Sophie collapsed on her English and Saint Francis Xavier moved over to Marian, hovering his rooster over her face.

"Go on, suck it. It's your turn."

"No ! Get away from me ! I won't do it !"

A twitch of wrath crossed his face, and like a salient snaked, he reached out and seize Sophie's decent titty, squeezing brutally hard. Sophie gave a bloodcurdling sidesplitter of agony and tried to draw out away, but Saint Francis Xavier's hold on her was like smoothing iron. With snag in her eyes, Marian tried to free her sister but Xavier smacked her across the face.

"There is only one way to intercept this. I suggest you make up your mind, because I may just rip her tit off and eat it in nominal head of you."

call, Marian opened her mouthpiece and let Saint Francis Xavier insert himself into her. The taste of her Sister's motherfucker was bitter, and the moment his turncock touched her glossa, his cum started leaking down her throat and made her gag. Sophie watched helplessly as her sister was violated, Marian's back talk being used as a fleshlight after Xavier had fucked her arse. Xavier soon increased his ruthlessness, forcing his cock all the way into her throat and holding it there. Marian struggled against him, choking on his manhood. She grabbed Sophie's arm, nonverbally begging her Sister to aid her.

"check it, you'll kill her !"

"Don't trouble, I know when to stop."

He waited for a arcminute until finally pulling out, with Marian immediately vomiting onto the floor and desperately filling her lungs with air.

"Your Sister did the Saami thing when I first enslaved her. Since I didn't cum, I won't make you lick it up. Now for the next character. Time for me to pop that cherry of yours."

At his words, Sophie grabbed her sister and pulled her to the far turning point of the bed, trying to shield her."Please, I'm mendicancy you ! Let her go ! Let her retain her innocence ! I'll do anything, whatever you want me to do, but delight don't take her virginity ! Not like this !"

Xavier gave a smash laugh."Well, well, what do you cognise ? Your dearest for your little sister has touched my heart. I'll be lenient and feed you a choice. low gear, reach under the bed and take hold of the first matter you feel."

Her hand shaking, Sophie reached under the bed and the blood drained from her face. She pulled out a double-ended dildo with a vesture harness.

"Here's your pick : either I can take her virginity or you can."

Her shoulder shaking, she began to cry while wringing the leather shoulder strap of the harness. Marian looked back and forth at Sophie and Saint Francis Xavier, unsure of which was worse.

"Ok… I'll do it."

Marian grasped her arm, terrified."Please ! Please don't do this to me !"

"Damn it, would you rather he do it ? !"

Marian shied away from her, feeling like she was all alone in this. She watched as Sophie inserted one end of the dildo in her cunt and secured herself in the harness.

Sophie stared at the strap-on, watched the way it bobbed when she moved. ‘ Oh God, this is so wrong…'

Xavier turned to Marian with a grinning."Lie back, spread your ramification, and get ready to feel your babe's love DEEP inside you."

Marian did as she was told and assumed the stance, with Sophie leaning over her."I'm so deplorable, I'm so sorry for all of this. I never should have come abode. Please, forgive me for this."

"Oh, hold on. That dildo will have a strong time entering her when she's dry. How about you put your mouth to bring and get her nice and wet ?"

She looked to Xavier, wanting to blink him a regard of pure hatred, but her will was too broken. She quietly whispered an excuse to her sister and moved down.

"No, wait… what are you doing ?"

"I'm so sorry."

Knowing she would be punished if she hesitated, she began licking her sister's pussy as if she had done it a thousand metre before.

"Don't ! That place is dirty !"

She tried to push Sophie back but she held on, working her tongue in Marian's puss. The ethical revulsion was almost too much for her to manage. She wanted to die, the taste of her Sister's pussy filling her mouth like toxicant. No one should ever do something so unholy. While she licked her sister out, Saint Francis Xavier put his cock back in her mouth. She gave in easier this fourth dimension, and tried to put in Thomas More exuberance so that he wouldn't choke her with it again. All three of them could find out the small close shave and whine coming from Marian as the feel of Sophie's tongue in her snatch became More and more than vivid. As horrible as the position was, her physical structure was reacting to it.

"Ok, that'll do. Sophie, fuck her."

Sitting up, Sophie wiped the cunt succus off her sass, needing a moment to regain her genial heraldic bearing. She then moved forward and leaned over, again whispering an apologia to her sister."Marian, I need you to be strong. delight bear with this."

She inserted the dildo into Marian's pussy, and immediately she began to writhe and cry from the size of it. Saying she was sorry over and over again, Sophie slowly pushed it in another inch while cupping her baby's face to try and comfort her. She stopped at that point, not sure whether or not she had deflowered Marian yet, but not wanting to go any further.

She looked at Xavier."Please, please don't make me do this."

"How about I help you work up the cheek ?"

He climbed onto the bed and got behind her. Before she could ask what he was going to do, he inserted himself into her motherfucker. Sophie gagged, unable to depict the sensation of being double-teamed by Xavier and the dildo. She felt like she could barely breath, like there was a balloon of some sort expanding in her pelvis. Xavier pulled out just over halfway and then slammed himself back in, turning the three of them into a Newton's rocker and forcing Sophie deep into her sister.

Marian screamed at the top of her lungs as the blood of her hymen trickled out and stained the bed piece of paper."Oh, it hurts ! It hurts so often !"

Sophie embraced her, crying with her sis."Marian, I'm so sorry. I'm so, so sorry."

Xavier laughed."Oh, don't worry, it'll tactile property better soon."

He pulled out almost all the way and did the same with Sophie, revealing the bloody dildo. He then slammed back into Sophie, and by extension service, slammed Sophie into her little baby. They continued on from there, following Xavier's pace as he not only fucked Sophie in the ass, but used her as a prosthesis to lie with Marian in the pussy. He was essentially wearing Sophie as a rubber to lie with her sister. She tried to keep up with him, often feeling like she was pulling out of Marian by pushing herself against Saint Francis Xavier's peter and pulling herself off him by pushing into Marian. How did it all come to this, being forced to rape her sister while she herself was being sodomized ?

But then something happened, something that chilled Sophie's rake and made her privation to bewilder up. Marian's whimper of bother and torture were turning into moans of joy, and instead of battle cry, she had a drunken smile on her face.

"Oh yes, grueling ! abstruse !"

She even began slurring in French, begging her sister to work the dildo in her pussy.

"No ! Marian ! You don't know what you're saying !"

"Oh Sophie, expression at how big up she has become. To think it would be so well-situated to turn her. It seems that your afters and innocent little sister has been hiding something from you. Do you like it, Marian ? Do you like getting fucked ?"

"Yes ! I like getting fucked !"

Smirking, Xavier pulled his cock out of Sophie, then moved over to Marian and forced it into her mouth."Do a in effect job cleaning it and I'll shag you as hard as you want."

She did as she was told, eager to feel a real tool in her vitiate incision. She sucked on his manhood with more enthusiasm that her sis had ever shown with Sophie watching her with letdown. ‘ Marian, what has he done to you ?'

He then shoved Sophie aside and took her blank space, forcing herself into Marian's pussy. Grabbing her hip joint, it took him only a moment to work up to a speedy pounding, making her groan in happiness as he violated her small consistence. Sophie watched them, having lost the posture to go. Over and over again, Marian would beg him to be even grating, to fuck her harder. She had spent her whole spirit protecting her little Sister, both her body and her innocence, and in a exclusive Night, Xavier had turned her into a hysteric slut.

"I love young girls, their voices are so virtuous when they scream. You can feel the actual criminal offense of defiling them, turning their beautiful little consistency into cum dumpsters. Say it, say what you are."

He didn't have to do anything to force her to address, she was already wrapped around his finger.

"I'm your cum dumpster !"

"trade good girl, now let's show your Sister that beautiful expression on your face."

They changed places, getting into the doggy-style and both front Marian. Reinserting himself into her, Xavier pulled back on her wrists like he had done with Sophie and increased the ferociousness of his drive, using his cock as a arm to pamper her almost masochistic euphoria. Her body was not ready to be fucked this punishing, but her head had broken under the pressure and she could not tell the departure between delight and pain. Sophie watched them, petrified and ashamed. The flavor on Marian's cheek, the way she grinned with her glossa hanging out and her eyes rolled back, it made her experience sick. Was that the looking at she had worn when Saint Francis Xavier was sodomizing her ?

Xavier snapped his digit and invisible hands grabbed Sophie, pulling away the strap-on and dragging her across the bed with her wooden leg cattle farm. Before Sophie could bar him, he grabbed the back of Marian's nous and pushed her aspect into her baby's snatch. Acting on instinct, she began licking like her life-time depended on it, replicating was Sophie had done to her.

"No, Marian ! Don't ! That's sinful, that's¬—"

Marian looked up at her, their eyes locking while she used her clapper to salute in her onetime babe's essence. Sophie could see it, the loss of all horse sense of cause. Did Marian even distinguish her ? Her infant sister was gone, having been replaced with this asinine whore.

The thrusting stopped as Xavier came, filling Marian with his seed."Now, let's see if you're as much of an anal retentive sporting lady as Sophie."

He again switched posture, this clip lying on his backrest with Marian on top of him, still facing Sophie with her feet on his knees. Regaining his erecting, he jammed himself into her virgin arse and began bucking his pelvic arch like a jackhammer, increasing the mass of her moan of ecstasy. This was her first time doing anal retentive, but to her it was heaven.

"Sophie, look at her. calculate at what your sister has become, what I turned her into. Aren't you glad you led me here ? Aren't you glad that you chased her down and dragged her to me, no matter how lots she fought and screamed and begged you to help her ? Aren't you glad you delivered her to me on a ash grey platter so that I could sprain her into my new slave ?"Sophie didn't respond, having no idea what she was supposed to say."Oh, flavour, my seed is dribbling out of her. Be a good slave and lick it up."

Her will smash, Sophie leaned forward and began drinking Saint Francis Xavier's cum out her little sister's deflowered pussy, still able-bodied to try out the blood from her break out maidenhead. He soon had another orgasm, shooting his loading deep into Marian's anus. He turned her over and spread her ass cheek, letting Sophie see the White person slime slowly running out of her puckered asshole.

"And bat her clean and jerk here too."

Clutching herself, Sophie worked up the courage to speak."Why ? Why are you doing this to us ?"

His conduct changing, Xavier threw Marian down onto the floor. He lunging for Sophie and he grabbed her by the throat with a strangling grip. As she gasped for breath, his stern expression turned back into a sadistic grin. He took a bit to lick the crying off her face and then answered her."Ask Helena."





Chapter 11



From the day Xavier got the apartment, Lily had been hard at employment on her back, on her knees, and on all four-spot, letting endless strangers have their way with her. She had been unquiet at get-go, but after the for the first time few men, she no longer cared. She would simply let them discharge themselves into her, maybe suck them off, hire a exhibitor, and then get set for the succeeding guy. Xavier would arrive back in the evening with solid food and gifts, claiming he had spent the day busy at workplace. Everything he bought for her was with the money she had made, if he even bought it at all. She never connected the DoT and the giving kept her happy and docile. They would eat, have sex, and then he would leave to go back to the schoolhouse to"avoid hunch ”. Then more men would come and bed her. She never had adequate meter to be bored or even leave the apartment. She was always in the bedroom, letting strangers animalise her, always with cerebration of Xavier in her mind.



Lily's body was completely drained of strength, yet her weapon continued to pump as she jacked off the two men. A third base had his cock in her mouth, a fourth part was fucking her twat, and a fifth was sodomizing her. The apartment was filled with men, all eagerly awaiting their good turn with the young whore. She had been selling her dead body since Xavier got the apartment, but she had never gone this long and with this many men. She had tried resisting at first, but no longer bothered asking for mercy or to be easy. They merely laughed at her and some early man would force himself into a hurt orifice.

Her only eternal rest came when she passed out, and she would wake up the Saami way she fell asleep, with some stranger raping her. Her stomach was literally full of cum, the solely matter she had"wipe out"in however long had this had been going on. Quite often, some man would pull her to deep-throat him and he would spark off her gag innate reflex, causing her to be sick out the slurry of semen and stomach pane and further dirty the gummy bed. Her snatch and anus were in same country, two falls of ejaculate from the dozens of men that had ejaculated into her, and she was pretty sure enough they were both bleeding. Her jaw was killing her, her whole rima oris sore beyond description.

At this point, her mind was just a blur. She didn't commend her name, her past, or anything outside of this room. She no longer bed that they were supposed to be paying her for this. She didn't live how long they had been using her. She only remembered seeing the sun fall, rise, and fall again. Saint Francis Xavier had never come back in that time. Her whole eubstance suffering, and every time a man thrust into her, it felt like she was being penetrated with broken chicken feed. Regardless, she was too fatigued and her thinker was too burned out for her to cry.

Some man would approach the semen-drenched bed, pull her over, and on instinct, she would pass around her pegleg so that he could force himself inside her and start thrusting. When someone stuck his cock in her face, she would get down sucking it with the skill of an capital of The Netherlands hooker. Sometimes it would be easy and she would only birth to contend with one or two men at a prison term. Most of the clip, though, they all ganged up on her and she would possess to nurse them in group like right now. When she became too disgusting, some man would fling her into the cascade and hose down her off like an animate being, then drag her back to the chamber and colza her.

How long had this been going on ? How long would it remain ?



"Ugh, what a mess."

Xavier had entered the flat, now empty, with Lily passed out on the bed. He stood over her, her little soundbox caked with dry seminal fluid, making her look like a serpent shedding its skin. Sighing in disgust, he snapped his fingers and she was bathed in flame, cleansing her body while her intragroup hurt were healed. The fire vanished and he checked her pulse. He was surprised to find her still alive. He was sure they had raped her to expiry. He also healed her brain, erasing the normally irreversible mental psychic trauma. With her body and psyche rejuvenated, she slowly woke up.

"Xavier ? Is that you ?"

"Hey honey, looks like you've been busy."

"Yeah. I made a lot of money for us."

"Good girl. Now do what some beloved ?"

She gave a tired nod and rolled onto her back, spreading her branch. Saint Francis Xavier got undressed and got on top of her, fucking her with the same crudeness as the dozens of men who had stood in that apartment before him.



vacation had come to an end, and for Helena, it wasn't nearly as bad as she had feared. Xavier had given her place, but when he did slither into her life-time, he was form. He had talked her into going onto another two particular date with him, they sparred three Thomas More fourth dimension, and the worst he did was sneaker into her bed a few times and finger her. To think that she had become so habitual to being molested by the Antichrist ...

What had originally been a traumatizing horror was now a simple annoyance. Considering everything else he had done to her, she knew to just find fault her battles, let him cause his way, and try not to have an orgasm. For some reason, the fact that he was the Antichrist seemed to make her less mad than she would hold normally been. Were he a normal man doing this, she would have exploded in rage and beaten him to death, but since he wasn't something that she would campaign back against, she almost felt no want to be furious. When he touched her, she reacted with the Lapplander level of distress as if she had to walk in the rainwater. It was just a piece of her life and she should just be glad it wasn't worse.

Helena was now lying in bed, bored out of her judgment. She had done all the extra credit work she could and studied until her head scathe. There was nothing left to do but wait for Sophie to come home. She had no melodic theme what clip she was coming back. If she knew when her caravan was coming in, she could have met her at the station. The clicking of a key in the door ringlet made her sit up in excitement, glad her friend was back. The door opened and capital of Montana lost her smile, seeing the aspect on Sophie's face. She was practically shooting daggers from her oculus. Oh God, there was only one thing that could piddle her so enraged…

Sophie stepped into the room and closed the door behind her. Not taking her eyes of capital of Montana, she walked over and sat down on her bed. The two miss stared at each early, waiting for one of them to speak.

It was Sophie who broke the secrecy."Why has Xavier been raping me ?"

The way she spoke, it was more like an accusal than a enquiry. Helena shuddered, knowing that this conversation was inevitable, but dreading it. She had hoped that it would never happen.

"Because of me."

"I know that already ! What the roll in the hay did you do to make him do this to me ? !"

The audio of her admirer swearing left Helena momentarily stunned."I was your roomie, that's what I did. Sophie, do you acknowledge what he is ?"She shook her drumhead."He's the Antichrist. I don't know what he's doing here or what he's trying to accomplish, but the day I met him… he said that he had developed a liking for me and wanted to puddle me his queen when he took over the world. I refused, and ever since then, he's been tormenting me and playing thinker games with me to try and win me over."

Angry bust began to fall from Sophie's middle."So that's it ? He's been torturing me simply to get to you ? I've been a hard worker because you didn't want to be a nance ? !"

Helena bolted to her feet, her eyes watery like Sophie's."Do you think he hasn't tormented me as well ? ! Every clip he raped you, he paralyzed and forced me to watch ! Over and over again, he's slipped into my bed and molested me ! He's made me abase and take down myself ! He gave you a arrest, didn't he ? He put one on me first !"

Sophie stood up and two friends faced each other."Do you have any estimation what he's put me through ? What he and my sister have put me through ? !"

Helena's choler had the wind knocked out of it."Wait, your sister ?"

Sophie too calmed down a little and looked away, but her vocalization was still full of anger."That's right. This holiday was infernal region itself."

capital of Montana grasped Sophie's men."What happened ? Tell me."

Sophie sat down on her bed and Helena crouched down before her, clutching her hands and trying to comfort her friend.

"He followed me to my home. I thought he just wanted to continue fucking me, but he also wanted my sister. He attacked her, she escaped, and… he forced me to go after her down feather and drag her back so that he could spoil her. He raped me first so that she could watch… then he made me break some big safe thing and take her virginity. I had to despoil my little baby so that he wouldn't. I thought watching Marian being fucked and sodomized was the most tragic matter possible… but it got worse."

"How ? What did he do ?"

"It's not what he did, it's what happened to Marian. She snapped, turned into a completely different somebody. She became a ravenous prostitute, always begging him to fuck her harder. She became addicted to his contumely. He would look and disappear, and when he was gone, she would ask me again and again when he would come back and let her give suck his thing. For the beginning few daytime, he would take turn of events using us. He would pull in me look on as Marian begged for him to cum in her ass. Marian would diddle with herself while she watched me get mounted from behind.

Then he got truly savage. He began giving Marian assignments. He turned her against me…"



Sophie was in bed, napping. She had been up half the previous nighttime, suffering from a chain of forcefully-induced orgasms.

"Sœur, Sophie…"

She slowly stirred, hearing her Sister calling her. Second to Saint Francis Xavier, Marian was the last somebody she wanted to see. After what Marian had watched and what she had turned into, Sophie didn't have the heart to seem at her lilliputian sister. She kept her back turned, wishing to go back to sleep. At least then she wouldn't tactile property grisly with revulsion.

"What ? What is it ?"

She felt Marian climb into the bed with her.

"I'm horny."

Marian then reached around and jammed her mitt into her sister's panties, working her fingers inside of her. Sophie tried to pull away but Marian held on, stirring her fingers in her pussy.

"No ! Marian, stop ! This isn't right !"

"Xavier said this would be fun. seed on, take it."

Sophie's heart skipped a rhythm as she realized Marian was wearing the strap-on. She began to cry, refusing to consider what was happening."Please, don't do this. I love you."

"I love you too, that's why I'm going to puddle you finger good."

Marian yanked down Sophie's panties and then forced the dildo into her whoreson. Sophie winced and continued to cry, wishing her sis would arrest but not having the will to fight her off. The rubber toy was dry, and even after all the abuse her dickhead had taken, the rubbing was agonizing, but Marian didn't seem to care about her sister's botheration. Grabbing Sophie's hair, she began ramming her back door with the sex toy, her poke increasing in strength and cruelty. Sophie cried out from both the pain in the neck of the sodomy and her sister's betrayal. Marian climbed on top of her, slamming down onto her sister with her broad weight and driving the dildo as cryptic into her mother fucker as possible.

"See sœur ? Isn't this fun ?"



"Marian became just like him. She became my enemy. She would excruciate me with every chance she had. To her, it was like an devoid game. When our parents were around, she would conceal her actions and use her hands on me, forcing me to hide my response so that they wouldn't placard. When they were gone, she would ravish me with that rubber thing. Xavier would usher up and she would beg him to compliment her for abusing me. Then they would gang up and double-team me for hr. I wanted to fight her off, to try and thwack some sense into her… but I just couldn't hurt her. No matter what she had become, she is my niggling sister. Besides, it was my fault she became so writhe. I brought Saint Francis Xavier to her and her to Xavier. I deserve her ruthlessness. I deserve to be punished by her."

Both Helena and Sophie were in tears, overwhelmed with their suffering but grateful they could at finally talk to each other share their feelings.

"Sophie, I'm so sorry. I didn't mean for this to go on. I never wanted you to be hurt."

"How can we end this ? How can we escape from this ?"

capital of Montana got to her ft."There is only one way I can think of."



Helena knew where to find Saint Francis Xavier as if through some one-sixth mother wit. She could experience him, his presence in the schooltime, and was zeroing in on his location. She at final met him on the quadruplet, where he was dozing under a shady tree.

"All right, I give in."

He opened one eye and looked at her."Excuse me ?"

Helena clutched herself, staring at the ground with her teeth clenched."I'll become your queen. I'll do whatever you want. Just please, leave everyone else alone."

"No deal."

She looked up at him, feeling the ground falling away from under her feet."What ?"

Saint Francis Xavier stood up and strode over to her."You heard me. I don't accept your offer. I told you that I would win your heart. You think I'll make you mine so that you can simply run the martyr ?"

"But… wasn't that the unit decimal point of tormenting Sophie ? Weren't you trying to blackmail me by holding her hostage ?"

"Of course not. That would be too easy. If you become my queen regnant so that you can sacrifice yourself to protect your friends, then you haven't really given in to me. You still consider me your enemy. We'll be in bed, our bodies intertwined, and you'll be thinking ‘ improve me than Sophie ’."

"But then… why ? Why would you anguish her like this ? ! Why would you turn her and her sister against each other ?"

"That was actually totally unexpected. I never would deliver guessed she would turn into such an obedient short sadist. But as for why, tell me something : Which was unfit when Sophie confronted you ? The hurting you knew she had felt ?"He stepped forward and lifted her chin, looking into her tearful eye."Or the fact that I lied to you ? Helena, I'm the Antichrist. What could possibly make you imagine that you can believe me when I say"confidence me"? I originally made Sophie my victim to weaken your resolve, unwrap you to depravity, and use her to cook you go through those tribulation. I resumed tormenting her simply so that I could lie to you."

Helena fell to her knee, robbed of her strength."Why ?"

"Instead of asking me why, ask yourself. Why did you hope me ? Why did you believe me ? Why did you believe me over your own instincts ? It's because you needed to find some dependable in me. You needed to find out some reformable vista in me so that you could use it to justify your feelings. No matter how much you resist it, you have developed touch for me. You hate me because you think you're supposed to and your pride and opinion are telling you that I am your foeman, but your sum can not turn away. You know this, so you tried to justify that desire by saying"at to the lowest degree he's a man of his word, I can prize that ”. You could like one share of me and detest the repose, guilt-free."

Helena covered her ears and shook her straits."No ! No, that's not true ! I hate you with every fiber of my being ! You're evil ! You're a freak ! You hurt the the great unwashed I care about !"

Xavier grabbed her by her shoulders and dragged her to her feet as if her body was weightless."Then why did you smile and laugh on our date ? Why was I able to fix you happy ? When you thought I had erased Sophie's storage and stayed away from her, you struggled to find a rational reason to hate me. No matter what you had seen me do, the fact that I was able to make clean it all up and not leave even a single scar behind slowly crept into your head. You began to realize that it wasn't nearly as big a deal as you thought."

He dropped her back to the basis and snapped his fingers, with a pocket-size spark of darkness popping."There, I just erased her memories of everything I or her sister did to her and replaced her with happy ones. She'll looking back on that vacation and smiling at all the calibre time she spent with her family. Shall we go back to your way so that you can see her humming and thanking God for this beautiful day ?"

He snapped his digit again."And now she's back to being traumatized. She's probably sitting on her bed, contemplating suicide."He snapped his finger's breadth over and over again."well-chosen. Sad. Happy. Sad. Happy. Sad. See how insignificant it all is ? All the suffering she's gone through can completely vanish and she can be even happier than before."

"You can't just deny everything you did to her ! All of the annoyance you've inflicted !"

"What pain ? She has no scar, her virginity has returned, and right now she's thinking back to eating dinner party with her syndicate. She doesn't even know I exist. spine home, her babe is the sweet and pure-hearted girl she was before she met me. Does it matter now what I might have done to her ? Tell me, which would be more vicious ? Torturing her and making her abject every day of her lifetime, then on her deathbed, give her memory board of the happiest and most satisfy liveliness she could have possibly lived, or to let her live that happy life, then on her deathbed, give her memory board of absolute hell ?

Half of reality is what happens, the other one-half is how we perceive it. Right now, what you think I did to her is cypher more than a fantasy, a delusion. According to her, she's been happy all this metre and nothing bad has happened. people don't care about the rattling world. They simply care about their own happiness. They want the things that make them well-chosen, even if they aren't really. It's why it's so hard to convert person that they're unseasonable or break them disengage of their ideology. They don't care about reality, as long as they can extend to live in the delusion that they are ripe. It's the Saame thing when they say they want the truth. They don't really want the accuracy. They just want what they want to pick up to be the truth."

Helena didn't reply, having no idea what she was supposed to say. Xavier's words had smothered the fire of her anger. Her inwardness still ached from the pain in the neck she knew Sophie had gone through, but if Saint Francis Xavier really had erased her memories… was that pain even real ?

"Like I said, the real reason you're angry isn't because I hurt your acquaintance. You're tempestuous because I lied to you. I will say, though, that that was the commencement lie I ever told you and I will make for to desist from lying to you again. I really don't take any joy in lying to you."A moment passed, in which capital of Montana remained kneeling on the grass with Xavier standing behind her."Let's go get a coffee."



Helena didn't know how Xavier got her out to that café, but there they were, sitting in the subtlety of an umbrella, each with an espresso.

"William Tell me something, have you honestly considered my go ? I would be disappointed if you said no to me in the church and never bothered to actually guess afterwards."

"I won't do it."

"Tell me why."

"Because you're evil, because you hurt mass. How could I ever love someone as demented as you ?"

"You love God, and he isn't any skilful. In Africa, a thousand small fry will die today from war, from disease, from starvation. They'll cling to the bibles that the missionaries gave them out of guilty conscience for living their rich, tweed lives in leisure. They'll be told that God loves them while they suffer. In some res publica in Eastern Europe, a individual mother with three children will be raped by a constabulary policeman. She'll clutch her crucifix and beg God to write her. No response comes, even when she finds out she's pregnant, when she's denied an miscarriage, and when she dies from ramification in the pregnancy and leaves her children to be snatched up and sold into slavery. In the infirmary three mi away, your friend lies in what would have been an irreversible coma. He had suffered debilitating brain price that would have left him as a vegetable until he died of old age or his pancreatic cancer got him. He was a man of the church, a priest who helped hundreds of children like you find a menage in Rosewood University, yet God didn't protect him, heal him, or save him. I did."

He could see the effect of his watchword on her, the obtrusive strain on Helena's face.

"Your Holy Writ won't destroy my faith."

Xavier reached into a modest tin in the middle of the tabular array and pulled out a dough packet. He mixed it into his coffee."Back during WWII, I spent some time in Germany. I watched as Nazis exterminated Israelite, gypsies, the disabled, and other group of masses. The citizens of Germany watched it come about. They did nothing to block it. Everyday people lived just down the road from concentration camps, knowing exactly what was going and not caring at all. In genocides, those multitude are called the bystanders. They watch as something frightful happens and do zero to stop it. If a new race murder were to happen, would you be a bystander ? Would you sit quietly by while mass were murdered in figurehead of you ?"

"No."

"Then why does God ?"

They stared at each other, Xavier waiting for Helena to respond.

"B-because he has a plan for everything. He works in ways that we can not possibly understand."

"What sort of architectural plan could integrate men being slaughtered, women being raped, and children being enslaved ? If that is his design, then doesn't that mean he not only allows those criminal offence to transpire, but actually commits them ? If I really am the foeman of God, why doesn't he block me ? How many women do you mean have begged God to write them from me ? Over holiday, your upright protagonist sobbed as she choked on my cock and her little sis raped her from tush. She prayed for God to stop me, but he did nothing."

"No, you're haywire !"

"Then help me. narrate me the truth. There are three possibilities : he doesn't have the mogul to contain tragedy and is thereby incompetent and weak ; he simply doesn't care about woe and is apathetic, looking down on mankind like you are ants or bacteria ; or he actually enjoys watching hoi polloi wallow in agony and gets his rocks off in creating humans simply to inflict pain on them, and is sadistic."

"God isn't like that !"

"How would you hump ? Have you ever verbalize to God ? Have you ever met God ? You know nothing about him and you refuse to know anything that goes against your fancy. It's just like I told you before : people don't tending about reality, only about what makes them well-chosen and lets them feel right. Admit it : I'm the only potential substantiation you have that God even exists. Without me, you'd have nada to go on but what people have told you about him, and even then, you ignore all the bad stuff. You're Catholic, you know the story of Job. My Church Father was capable to convince God to excruciate an guiltless man just to prove a point. Does that audio like a loving Creator ?"

"You're the Antichrist, everyone knows that you'll speak out against Him. Why would I ever trust your Logos ?"

At that, a split second of annoyance moved across his face, and when he spoke, it was with anger."Don't do that. Don't hide behind your bible and shrug me off. take heed to me not as the Antichrist, but as a man. This is supposed to be a debate. You're supposed to forestall my title with a coherent argument of your own, not throw a temper fit. If you want to proceed to turn away me, delicately, but don't do it by acting like a tot. At least Thomas Aquinas put some rationality into his arguments. Don't be some mindless lagger. You're upright than that."

Regardless of her hate of him, the way he spoke to her made Helena embarrassed. It was the Lapp way she felt when a teacher scolded her.

Saint Francis Xavier ordered another coffee and calmed down before he resumed speaking."You didn't answer my original motion. Have you really considered my offer ? Have you thought it through ? Or have you just blocked it out of your judgment and equated it to ceasing to exist ?"

"I… I… I don't know. I just… can't seem to see it."

"I'm curious, how well do you visualize yourself as becoming a member of the Swiss safety ? Have you truly planned it through ? Did you constantly fantasize about it before you met me ? Were you able to visualise everything that you would do and what your life would be ? Or all this time, have you not been advancing towards your goal, but simply clinging to it ? Are you actually looking towards the future, or is your claim of joining the Swiss Guard just a defense reaction mechanism when someone asks you what your design are and you realize you have no idea ? What does the time to come mean value for you ?"

The fire in her eyes flared back up."I've always been resolute in my goal, and your tricks won't alteration that."

Xavier stared her, his facial expression unreadable."I want to see if that's unfeigned. Come on, let's go somewhere more private."



Having paid for their coffee bean, Saint Francis Xavier took her to a placidity area of the city and sat down with her on a bench.

"I want to see what your future looks like."

She stared at him quizzically."What are you talking about ?"

"I want to see what your mind creates when you imagine your future."

"Wait… you mean learn my judgment ? ! No way ! Never !"

"Relax, I won't dig into anything. Besides, I let you into my mind, commend ? All of those memories I shared with you ? Just think of it as putting on a presentation. You won't register me anything you don't want to."

Even after everything that had happened between them, capital of Montana struggled to find a reason to say no. She wanted to say it, she knew she should, but when she looked at him, she couldn't call up why.

"Ok, but no weird stuff."

Xavier gave a pocket-sized smile and reached out towards her. She scrunched herself up, fearing his touch, but strangely became composure when Xavier placed his hands on her cheeks, so gently she almost didn't sense him at first. His palms were warm. With the connexion made, she felt a duct open up in her mind, like Xavier had just put a window in her forehead and all her thought could be seen. Not wanting to evince him anything he could use against her, she focused only on her intake.

The image appeared before her head's eye, and she knew Saint Francis Xavier could see it. She was standing at the Alexander Pope's position, carrying a ceremonial halberd and dressed in the uniform of the Swiss people Guard with a face of stoic pride on her face. But… that was it. Try as she might, she couldn't deepen the fantasy beyond that. For a moment, an range of her and her beau guards fighting off assailant flashed in her mind, but was crushed by her rational thinker questioning the likeliness of such an event actually happening. After all, when was the last meter the Pope had been attacked ?

"I thought as much. Joining the Swiss Guard isn't your real goal. It's just the Charles Herbert Best you can number up with. You're afraid of leaving Rome but you have nothing to go on but your religious belief, so you want something that will let you put your violent fanatism to use. It's not the future tense that you're looking towards ; you're just desperate for a way to stay on in the present."

Helena didn't respond, realizing now that there was undeniable the true to his words. Before, that figure of speech of her in that uniform had been all the motivation she needed, but now Xavier was showing her the hollowness she had always ignored.

"Now, how would like to see your future if you join me ?"

Before she could resolve, the world around them was blurred and distorted as if they were phasing out into a duplicate population. It was just like Xavier's store, but now when realness solidified, they had moved forward in fourth dimension. Rome wasn't very different from what it was in the present, but it did calculate more… militarized. The buildings had all been reinforced, as if expecting a mortar blast, and walking by the bench was a group of soldiers, all wearing suit of clothes of armor that incorporated Kevlar with the metallic element plating. On their pectus were the three half a dozen of Saint Francis Xavier's mark, and their weapons of choice were machine guns with scimitars attached, worn on the arm and resembling a lobster claw.

Xavier stood up and held out his hand to capital of Montana."This is five twelvemonth in the future of the world we'll rule together. Shall we take a look ?"

Slowly, she took his hand.



Helena had to take on, Rome didn't look bad at all. Xavier had told her that he wanted to reign the world instead of destroy it, and even then, she had expected hell on earth on Earth and the suffering and distortion of every human on the planet by bloodthirsty daemon. She didn't see any of that. Life in the city looked no different from before. The people appeared kind of despondent, but that just came with the territory.

"Let me gauge, you assumed black skies, lakes of fire, and the enslavement of all mankind ?"

Helena turned to him, having been awestruck by the sight of the fully restored Colosseum."Um… yeah."

"fountainhead, had I been alone in taking over the reality, it would induce been a picayune bit like that. There would be a lot of line and a lot of suffering. But you were with me and took it upon yourself to right the legal injury of the world. Everyone on Earth now gets free housing and healthcare and nonentity goes athirst. There are no war because all the state have been united under our rule. The"body politic"still have elected functionary, but since you and I control everything, they merely delegate our rules, taking all of the bluster out of politics and making it so much more civic and easy than before. Think about it, no deadlock, no political party, and no rhetoric. Officials are elected based on their competency rather than their phoney promises. I'm the Antichrist and even I think that's great."

"But the people don't look very happy."

"Oh please, you act like everyone smiles all the time in the real world. The solely cause the people in the future would be infelicitous is because their ruler is the Antichrist. They cling to the old Judeo-Christian belief organization and continue to imagine that they would somehow reach a worldly concern better than the one you and I have given them. Their merely trouble is that the media is forbidden from use of palaver and can't criticize the realm. As long as they say goose egg bad about us and don't try to stir a rebellion, free speech is a given right. It's the perfect partnership : I rule with an iron fist and you give everyone what they need."

Try as she might, Helena couldn't come up with an line against him. The world was sorry than she would hold liked… but there was no reason for it to be. If she and Xavier really did all the affair he said they did… was this really such a bad world ?

"come on, I want to show you the existent reasonableness why I brought you here."

taking her by the hand, he led her to the Vatican. St. Simon Peter's square and the Basilica had been remodeled to await more like a castle, with all the statues of ideal and angels removed. Soldiers patrolled the sphere like ants, not all of them human. devil, clear as day, could be seen moving in and out of shadows, no different from the gargoyle statues on the ceiling of cathedral. This world was just an illusion, so nothing so much as glanced at them as they made their way to the entry. About to maltreat inside, the gonging of church service Alexander Bell echoed across the urban center. Helena looked up, hearing brawny annex fuss, and felt her jaw hang slack.

The sky was filled with demon, flying over capital of Italy like migratory birds. Among them was a Dragon, right out of a fantasy novel, as large as a 747 and with a body like sterling ash gray. Helena couldn't quite see from this distance, but it looked like there was individual on its dorsum. Was that… Saint Francis Xavier ?

"Come on, let's go inside."

They made their way into the Roman basilica, and as they crossed through the chiliad hall, capital of Montana looked back as the silver Dragon landed in St. shaft's square toes. She watched as the disguise rider got off the Draco's back and rubbed it under its Kuki-Chin. The chiliad cathedral was filled with masses, either soldiers standing guard or bureaucrat handling the paperwork of the monarchy. Xavier came to a sudden stop and capital of Montana bumped into him, nearly falling to the flooring. She looked past him and her eyes widened. Underneath the main altar of the basilica were two toilet, and in one was Saint Francis Xavier. He had allowed himself to age, now looking like a man in his betimes twenties, but with an air of due date that made him come out much former. Helena couldn't deny that he was very handsome. He had a sly smirk on his face, looking straight through Helena and the literal Xavier. But if he was there, then who was…

The sound of trumpets echoed through the basilica and one of the guards called out."All hail faggot Helena !"

There, striding down the hall towards them was her next self. Helena stared at the char before her, ineffective to even agnize her. Having removed her helmet, the future tense Helena was even more beautiful than the archetype, with her crimson hair now hanging down the length of her spine. But it was more than just her appearance that struck Helena. It was… the atmosphere her future self seemed to have. The way she walked, that sure-footed smirk on her face, that powerful gleam in her eye, the majestic effulgence to her hairsbreadth ; it gave her a overlooking authority that a woman so young could never possess in the veridical world. Helena almost felt intimidated by this version, staring at her as if looking at a goddess in the flesh. It was almost as if she had fallen in passion with herself.

As the queen walked, everyone got down on their knees, and for a second, capital of Montana almost did as well. Could this be true ? Was this really the woman she would become ? The future Xavier stood up and greeted the future Helena, and the real Helena became flushed as she watched the two of them parcel a passionate kiss.

"How was Russia ? I take it the rebellion was well-to-do to crush."

"Everything stopped as soon as I got there. I almost didn't even have to get off Roroaka to scare everyone into submission. But it was nice to get out for a day, and best of all, no one had to die. Still, I wish I could have gotten at least a picayune action."

She snapped her fingers and handmaiden rushed over and helped move out her armour. She stood only in spandex shorts and a sport bra, and staring at her, the real Helena could almost sense herself becoming a lesbian for her time to come ego. That mature body was brilliant to say the least. It practically steamed elegance and intimate confidence. And her tits ! Helena thought hers were okay now, but damn !

"Well tonight, we'll banquet in solemnisation of your victory."

The future Helena pressed herself against him and gave him a kiss."favorite, we feast every night. How about just some Formosan and a motion picture on the couch ?"

"Of form. I'll find us something skillful to watch."

"Right now, I think I'll go see Adam. He must be hungry."

The real capital of Montana turned to Saint Francis Xavier. ‘ Adam ?'she nonverbally asked.

He merely smiled.

She and Xavier followed her futurity ego through the castle and saw her enter a guarded room. When they went in after her, Helena felt her bosom skip a beat and she covered her lip to suppress her gasp. Her time to come self was sitting in a rocking chair by a trot with an baby in her weapons system. Bathed in the visible light of the setting sun shining through the window behind her, she had a warm smile on her grimace as she nursed him. Looking at her with that child, Helena felt her completely world become turned upside down. At that present moment, she seemingly forgot everything she knew and thought. Never in her life had she been so… entranced, so overwhelmed with emotions. A child ? She would really… have a baby ? Not once in her life story had she ever given any thought into having kids. She had always planned on giving her life to the church and being married only to her job, but seeing that child in the arms of her future ego made her feel more desperate to have one than she thought potential.

She slowly moved forward, her legs feeling numb, reaching out to the swaddled babe. She knew that none of this was real, that this was just an legerdemain created by Xavier, a simple phantasy, but to her, that child was the realest thing in the creation. If she could just sense him squeeze her finger with his tiny manus, hold him and smack the top of his read/write head, she could…

She jumped in shock and pulled back, another hand reaching through her as if she was a holograph. The time to come Saint Francis Xavier had entered the room and was doing what she had tried to do. She watched as he rubbed the top of X's head, the three of them as well-chosen as could be.

She looked over to the real Xavier, standing in the doorway. There was a strange looking at on his face, sad almost. He was watching the three illusionary fig the Lapplander way she was. It was as if… this was his first clock time seeing them. It looked almost like this was all as new to him as it was to her, and it was having the same effect.



After watching the three of them have dinner, the real Xavier led the tangible Helena upstairs, simply mimicking their future selves. In the lavish sleeping accommodation, she watched as their illusionary counterparts began kissing and stripping off each other's wearable. Her expression was shiny red from embarrassment. This was all just a fantasy of Xavier, but it was incredibly unnerving.

"Now we get to the material fun."

"Oh God, you're not going to make me watch this, are you ?"

"Come on, you know you want to. Just enjoy the show."

On the bed, the two adult were completely naked with their tongues dancing. Helena was on top, riding Xavier's cock while he gripped her taut ass. She pulled her lips away from his, grinning as she thrust back against it.

"How does it experience to be back on your true throne, my fagot ?"

"It's so comfortable, I could sit here all day. Riding on Roroaka's back is nothing compared to this, my king."

Helena watched them with disgust."Oh please, this is so corny."

"Corny ? Well then how about I dirty it up a bit ?"

The future Saint Francis Xavier sat up and kissed the future capital of Montana, then separated from her."I have a present for you, a new girl."

He stood up out of the bed and clapped his hand as if to wrick on a light. From a side doorway in the sleeping accommodation, a young woman stepped out, dressed in a nightgown with nothing underneath. She was sixteen, short blonde hair and good-sized breasts, looking incredibly nervous and precious as a release.

"Don't worry, she's eager to please. She just needs to be broken in a little."

Helena got up out of the bed and walked over to the young woman, a smiling on her fount and a prance to her pass, as if eager to let her see her naked body. She stood before her, the girl averting her gaze from Helena's round tit and lustful smirk.

"Oh, very cute. What's your name ?"

"M-Millie, your highness."

"fountainhead, Millie, you get to be our toy for a patch. I know you're scared, but that's what makes it so very much fun. Before long, you'll be begging for more."

She raised her bridge player and stroked Millie's cheek, making her shiver, then held it there before the girl's mouth, inviting her. Unsure of what else she was supposed to do, Millie nervously flitted her tongue between her fingers.

"goodness girl."

Helena then pulled her in front of her and grabbed her from behind, one hand fondling Millie's breast and the former between her legs, just as she had learned from Xavier. The girl whimpered and blushed as Helena groped her, but did not fight back.

"My, my, what a beautiful body you have. You're so cherubic and cutter, and these bosom of yours are to die for."

The real Helena turned to Saint Francis Xavier."Ugh, you're despicable."

"Hey, you complained about it being platitudinal. In this scenario, some of my sadistic traits rub off on you and you develop a taste for female child. You love it when we take twist with them, both playing with them yourself and watching me have my way with them. Hey, this is just a fantasy. It's not like we actually traveled forward in clock time. It's all up to you if you end up like this. But let's watch."

The future Helena pulled Millie's nightgown away, then crouched down and began hungrily sucking on her breasts. The girl panted from the sense of capital of Montana's lips on her nipples, as well as the sweeping strokes of her tongue. She then brought her over to the bed and laid her down, with Xavier literally throbbing with anticipation. Helena climbed on top of her, hefting her boob over Millie's face.

"Go on, you know you want to."

Slowly, Millie raised her head and began sucking on Helena's breasts, just as she had done. The only difference was that capital of Montana's consistence was producing nourishment for her baby son, and that victuals was now running down Millie's throat.

"Good, isn't it ? Don't be shy."

The girl began switching back and Forth River between them, drinking from one and then the other. capital of Montana gave a soft moan and craned her neck, feeling not just the sassing of Millie on her nipples, but Xavier's tongue as he went down on her from derriere. He then switched down to Millie, spreading her leg and licking her Virgin honeypot.

The real Helena tried to turn away, but Xavier had a firm clasp on her shoulders.

On the bed, Saint Francis Xavier had just mounted Helena from behind, and was thrusting into her like an animal. The sound of her ass clapping against his thigh was like medicine, with capital of Montana crying out in raptus as she was both hammered and had her knocker sucked.

Standing by, Saint Francis Xavier whispered in Helena's ear."looking at yourself, look at how happy you are. This is the Helena that knows how to delight liveliness, how to have fun, how to require everything around her and make it her own. In the future you so pitifully scrapped together, you were nothing but a pawn, wasting your lifetime in the service of yet another imposter. You would spend the honest geezerhood of your life doing nothing but standing in uniform and becoming dusty with boredom. In your future tense with me, you live your life to its fullest, basking in fulfillment with a smile on your face every day. You have a loving husband, a son that you cherish, a world that you lead into the gilt age of mankind, and your nights filled with passion and sexual euphoria.

Is this really so bad a animation ? How long will it be before you realize that your square-toed narrow-mindedness is just getting in the way of your happiness ? That you cling to an obsolete cosmos in desperate want for a alteration ? That you have the hazard to do more good than you could ever own done in that laughable uniform ?"

One the bed, the future Xavier grunted as he came, shooting jet after jet of semen into Helena's womanhood. She purred in XTC and moved forward. She hovered her pussy over Millie's face, the young girl wincing as drops of semen fell on her face.

"Come on, child. You tasted your queen, now you get to sample your king."

posterior her, Xavier kneeled between her legs and rubbed his cock against her virgin slit."And now you get to become a woman,"he chuckled.

giving in, Millie raised her head and began to drink the semen out of Helena's pussy. At the like time, Xavier deflowered her, with her phonation echoing through the bedroom.

Helena at last broke release of Xavier's clench."enough, I want to go home."

Xavier sighed and snapped his fingers. The illusion disappeared, returning them to that bench in the street.

Helena turned to him, a facial expression of anger on her face that she had never worn before."Why ? Why do you keep coming after me ? Of all the little girl in the world, why are you so obsessed with me ? There are plenty others who would jump at the chance to be your fagot, go ask them. hell on earth, Daphne attacked me because she was covetous that you picked me over her ! Go put a jacket crown on her head ! Or are you so pathetic that you can't handle someone saying ‘ no'?"

He stood up off the bench and walked towards her. This was the first fourth dimension she had seen him angry, at to the lowest degree tempestuous at her."Do you know the remainder between us ? What really sets us apart ? We've both spent our intact life story lying about who we are, but at least I'm honest about what my nub desires. How long are you going to save lying to yourself ? If after all this meter, you can look me in the oculus and honestly say you feel nada for me, fine, I can endure with that. But what I can't bandstand is you lying to me and hiding behind bullshit. For once in your life sentence, tell the accuracy !"

As he had again and again, Xavier walked past her, this clock time bumping his shoulder against hers, leaving her alone with her nous racing.



Helena returned to her dorm room, finding Sophie there, smiling and full of life. She had no memory of the matter Saint Francis Xavier had done to her, not even a 1 cicatrix. So… had he really done them ?

"Hey, you ok ?"Sophie asked.

She perked up as her Quaker called out to her."Yeah, I'm fine."

"Where have you been all day ?"

"Oh, nowhere. Just enjoying the end day of vacation. seminal fluid on, let's go get dinner."



Night had fallen, and Sister Olivia was lying in a tub in the stave can. She had jammed a towel rack into the door so that no one could agitate her. The H2O was warm, just like the line of descent pouring from her slit wrists. She could no longer endure Saint Francis Xavier's agony and had decided to end her life. As she waited for the darkness to eat her, a darkness shifted across her case.

She looked up into the coldness middle of Xavier."Please, just let me die."

He grabbed one of her bleeding wrists, healing the wounding."Not yet. Your body still belongs to me."



"Xavier ! You're back !"

Marian jumped out of bed, running across her room and tackling him. Funny, she was almost like Lily, except she was less sorry and more masochistic, not to remark sadistic.

"Yeah, I'm back."

"So what do you want to do to me ? Will you fuck me in my pussycat or my ass ? Can I swallow your cum ?"

"I have a safe melodic theme. I'm taking you somewhere you can possess a lot of fun."



Daphne sat on her roommate's bed, holding the girl like a straitjacket. She had tied her up and was torturing her with clothespins and cigarette Nathan Birnbaum. She bolted up when Saint Francis Xavier appeared at the human foot of her bed."lord, what are you doing here ?"

"I need you for something."He looked down at the sobbing girlfriend, drooling on the nut gag in her sass."Also, bring her, I guess."



Xavier grabbed Sophie by the throat, waking her up in her bed but keeping her silent with his strangling suitcase. Nearby, capital of Montana slept soundly, while Xavier returned all of the memories of Sophie's torture.

"You're coming with me. Your babe will be there."



Lily walked to the apartment incoming, yawning and rubbing her center. A tatty knock had woken her up in the middle of the night. What was going on ? She opened the door, finding Xavier.

"Get yourself ready, there are men coming over."

"Oh… uh… ok."

"Also, there will be other girls with you."



"capital of Montana, wake up."He shook her, trying to get her to conjure up."seminal fluid on, inflame up."

"Unh… leave me alone."

"Helena, now."

She rolled over, turning her spinal column on him."As long as you let me kip and put nothing inside me, do whatever you want. I'm too tired to care."

Xavier grabbed her by the shoulders and sat her up, shaking her until she had to the tiredness exorcized from her body.

She rolled her head back and sighed."You know, I preferred when you would just grovel into my bed and finger me. What is with you lately ? You're acting crazy."

"Get dressed, there is something I need to show you."

"Just go away."

"Either get dressed or I can bring you there in your underwear."



Xavier and capital of Montana materialized in the hallway of a begrimed apartment building. Before them was a door, and behind it were the earn sounds of crying, moaning, grunting, and the squeaking of mattress springs and early pieces of furniture.

"What's going on ?"

"I'm going to instruct you the signification of despair."

He opened the door and brought her into the apartment. inside were dozens of men, divided into groups and clustered around women. Sophie, Marian, Sister Olivia, Daphne, and other students she didn't recognize. Everyone in the apartment was naked. It was a monumental rape orgy. Marian was the only one not sobbing as she had all her hole filled. If anything, she was overjoyed, switching between the men trying to jam their putz in her sassing.

On the bed was Lily, a tedious look to her eyes as yet another man fucked her in the asshole. A lot of these men had fucked her before, but she had learned to block out their faces. In the kitchen, Sister Olivia was sobbing as her pussy was stretched near to tearing. She had two men fucking her at once. They didn't seem to care that their pecker were rubbing against each other. Sophie was on her knees, crying from the stinging cecity as the men ejaculated onto her side over and over again. She was literally drenched in seed. There was also Daphne, pressed against the window as she was fucked from behind, her centre darkened with the annoyance of Saint Francis Xavier's betrayal. Her roommate was being crushed under some fat guy, and another girl was doing a handstand as she had both her pussy and asshole violated.

Helena stared in jar, feeling like she was going to throw up at the sight of so many mass getting raped. She turned to Saint Francis Xavier, bout in her eyes."Why ? Why would you do this ? Why would you torture these cleaning woman like this ?"

"To show you the truth of this world. attend at this, look at how easygoing it is to take a shit hoi polloi suffer. There is no such thing as exemption in this universe, only chaos and the illusion of Holy Order. You think me iniquity because of the matter I do, but that's only because the domain lets me. You think that because of who and what I am, I corrupt this world, but this world is already cloud. I simply mockery this twisted incubus you call reality. I am the ophidian, slithering through the crumbling foundations of the kingdom of man. I don't need my office to immix in. I'm already surrounded by horror."

Helena tried to run back out into the hallway, but he grabbed her by the coat of arms and forced her to watch, squeezing so mean that she cried out in pain in the ass."Don't you dare turn away from this ! Don't you dare shut it out ! You think that this is anything strange ? You think that I am some exception to the peace treaty of the public ? No, horror like these will keep on on until human race's end, just as they have occurred since mankind's beginning. calculate at these women, their mind twisted and their hearts crying out for someone to help them. They pray to God, but he doesn't result. Where is your God ? Why doesn't he finish me ? Why doesn't he save them ?

All over the world, people suffer just like these cleaning woman. They are enslaved, raped, and murdered. It has been like that for infinity. Yet you sit in your lofty university, hidden within the lavishness of Rome, believing that this world is God's promised land. You believe that lifetime is fair, that God will provide for those who are loyal to him, but the gore never ends !"

"Please ! Just block off this !"

"You can stop this yourself ! You have the luck to break the endless death march of sentence ! Use me ! Use my power to make this populace into what you want it to be ! I am offering you the kingdom ! I'm offer you a luck to end the horror once and for all ! Whether humankind thrives or suffers, I couldn't aid less, but can you really just push aside everything around you and rest stagnant like this ? Maybe I should just destruct this human beings ! Maybe I should make Hell on Earth ! How can you arrogate you'll stop me if you can't even block up the evil already around you ? !"

"I told you I'll spring in ! Please, I'll do whatever you want ! Just let them go !"

"NO !"

Saint Francis Xavier tossed her aside and then clapped his handwriting together. All the men in the room salvo into flame, their build peeling off their off-white with flow of fire pumping from their mineral vein. All of the woman lost knowingness and vanished, teleporting back to their family. Only Lily remained, passed out on the bed.

He turned back to Helena."Enough lying ! Enough lying to me and lying to yourself ! Why are you so scared of the future ? Why are you so unwilling to accept your touch ? The capital of Montana I know and love has eyes full of passion and a will to fight, but look at yourself now. I offer you a life beyond your tempestuous dreaming, a luck at felicity and the ability to protect human race, and you fall apart into a hapless wreck ! What are you so afraid of ? ! WHAT DO YOU REALLY neediness ? !"

"I DON'T KNOW !"Helena screamed as she held herself, sobbing harder than ever in her liveliness."I don't know anything anymore ! I'm afraid ! I don't know why, but I'm afraid of every day ! I'm afraid of the day after ! I'm afraid of growing up and my lifespan changing ! You're rectify, ok ? You're right. I'm terrified of the future. I don't know why, but I just can't movement forward."

Xavier stood over her and lifted her chin. She clutched his arm, crying into his hand.

"There is only one way to help oneself you. You're ineffectual to look the hereafter because you can't get over your past. You'll never be able to live until you stop ignoring your wounds and actually let them heal. Come on, I'm taking you home."





Chapter 12



The suffocating fantasm receded but Helena was still submersed in darkness. The storey of the flat had been replaced with the feel of grass against her genu. In seconds she was drenched from the pouring rainfall, making her shiver.

"So this is where you came from."

She looked around, feeling Xavier's hand gripping her shoulder as he stood over her. At last, her head stopped spinning and she was able to await around. Her nitty-gritty dropped into her stomach at the sight of the shabby mansion, two miles from Irish capital. She was back in Ireland, staring at the crap-shack that had once been her home. Kneeling in the fields outside, she stared at the visible light in the Windows, and even over the pelting, she could hear her female parent's voice. She had company over. When Helena had been a youngster, she remembered her female parent always having company.

"Please, no, not here."

"This is where it all started, isn't it ? This is your menage. What happened here to take a leak you so angry at the earth ?"

Helena got to her ft and turned to him, and even in the rain, he could see her tears."Why are you doing this to me ? Why must you be so cruel ?"

"For once in my life, I'm not being cruel. I'm trying to help you. With or without me, you've been stagnant at that school, and your apparent motion into the future will be long and agonizing unless you come to terms with your yesteryear. Tell me what happened here. Let it out. It's time for you to distinguish me the truth, and narrate yourself the truth."

She grabbed him by the collar as if trying to lift him off his ft, but instead, simply leaned against him."Please, just ingest me back to the school ! I'm begging you ! Just let the past arrest in the past !"

"Not until you move forward ! You claim you left your old life behind, but all you did was lock it up in a giant rubber that you've carried on your back all these geezerhood. You shut out your past but you haven't let it go. expression your fears and stop lying to yourself ! The accuracy will set you free."

She let go of him and turned around, taking a few steps to the mansion. It looked like it hadn't seen any upkeep since she left. She had kept this a surreptitious for so tenacious, but why, of all people, would Xavier be the one to finally find out it ? Perhaps he was right, though. This offensive plaza has been holding her back even after she left. She was about to speak, but stopped, startled by Xavier putting his coat over her berm. Even when soaked, the framework held his affectionateness. She hated that warmth, hated how right it felt.

"My mother… was an alcohol-dependent whore. Just listening to her, I can tell that nothing has changed. She gave birth to me out of spousal relationship and resented me ever since. She was never there for me, never supported me, and never gave more than the smallest measure of movement to drive fear of me. There were more hard drink bottle in that house than nutrient. I remember pushing them aside in the kitchen, desperately looking for something to eat. I remember them smashing by my nous when she threw them at me and I got showered in glass. I used to dream that someday I would encounter my father and he would take me away to someplace wonderful, away from this sorry country."

Saint Francis Xavier looked at her quizzically."Did she never tell you about your father ?"

"She didn't even know who he was. Considering how occupy she was, half the men in capital of Ireland could take in been my father."She looked back at him and gave a bitter laugh, her face wet with both rain and tears."How fitting would it be if you ended up as my father ? What a cliché twisting of fate. Seventeen days ago, a scumbag like you screwed my mother and I was born, the granddaughter of Satan."

"Helena…"

She looked back at the house, hearing a woman moaning inside."When she wasn't on her rear for money, she was bringing home a new beau every hebdomad. Each of them was regretful than the last. They would yell at me, they would hit me, and they would throw things at me. Sometimes… they would rise into my bed at night and touch me, just like you. That was how I learned to push, to keep back the pedophile looking for a precious little girl to spoil. Why do you think I hated men so much ? Every man I had ever met was either a loser or a monster.

Then, one day, I saw missioner at the topical anaesthetic church handing out pamphlet for Rosewood University. It was my chance to escape from perdition and I took it. tuition fee is barren if you tell them that you're an orphan. Considering the dress I was wearing, they didn't even question me. They took me with them and I got to leave this worthless commonwealth behind and bask in the warmth of Italian capital. I never wanted to arrive back here. I burned every bridge and severed every link connecting me to this wild house.

Then you came along and I got to experience hellhole all over again."

Xavier swallowed the lump in his pharynx. Right now, capital of Montana was more vulnerable than ever in her biography, but being with her, speaking to her with the air around them so stocky with emotion, he felt his own strength fade. The stratum of dark around his Joseph Black soul were being pealed away, as if he had ripped open his chest and exposed his beating tenderness to the cold rain, daring fate to spear him through.

"That's why you're so afraid of the future. This post was the unhurt reality to you when you were a minor, so you associate the whole humans with this place. Rome was your tag to happiness, now you're afraid to leave because you think some new revulsion will assail you if you try to leave. That was the literal reason why you wanted to bring together the Swiss safety device. The church service had saved you when you were a child, so you thought you would always be safe if you stayed at the Pope's position. You didn't want to protect the church ; you wanted the church service to protect you."

Helena balled her hands into clenched fist and her slender articulatio humeri trembled as she cried."All I ever wanted was to be stiff. All I ever wanted was the pledge that I would never again be a dupe. Maybe I should thank you for showing me how rickety I really am, for showing me what a misfortunate biography I've lived ! I thought I had grown up from being that scared little young lady crying under her bed, but all these years, I've just been lying to myself."

"No, you're wrong. capital of Montana, you are stronger than you could ever imagine. Do you think a weakling could have survived what you went through ? Could have fended off all the horrors closing in around her and made her escape ? Seizing her own life and living it ? Do you cogitate a weakling could fight down malefactor and even wound the Antichrist ? Every time you cursed me or swore that you would never side with me, your strong point was weakened by your contradicting emotions, but do you remember that night, the nighttime we sparred ? There was no fear in you ; there was no hate or even bang. For that abbreviated hour, you unleashed all the power pent up inside you and became a goddess, not because of what you felt for me, but because that was who you are.

You learned to agitate because you were afraid of ever going back to that incubus, because you feared variety and the unknown future. But the time to come I showed you, that was not some wish I had. That was your true self. That was the sure-footed and elegant queen who conquered the worldly concern instead of fearing it. It's not helplessness holding you back, but fear. If you never want to be a dupe again, take over the worldly concern instead of hiding from it. I saw that strength the present moment I met you, the strength to modify the world. That's why I wanted you to be my female monarch, because you are the first soul I ever met who I knew could fit that role. You are beautiful, you are impregnable, and you are glorious. I know it, even if you don't."

She stared up into the cloudy nighttime sky, feeling the rainwater pelt her face. ‘ Is that true ? Am I really as strong as he says ? All this time, have I been holding back simply because I've been afraid ? Can I really change the creation ? Can I really… stop being afraid ?'

"I'm sorry."

She spun around, a gaga looking at to her eye. Had he… just apologized ? He had never apologized before, even after Daphne attacked her. The look on his side was of true sorrow, an grammatical construction she never thought she would see on him.

"If I had known what you've been through, I never would receive tormented you like I have. My methods… would have been unlike. I wasn't trying to truly hurt you or remind you of your past. It was just my way of getting you to open up. I'm sorry… for everything."

She tackled him, unable to knock him off his foundation but beating his chest wildly with her clenched fist."Shut up ! Don't you dare rationalize ! You think that saying you're sorry will build it all ok ? ! You think a few passably password can make up for everything you've done to me ? ! Don't you do this to me ! Don't you dare do this to me !"

She leaned against him, sobbing uncontrollably.

"Helena…"

"Don't you dare apologize. Don't try to be nice to me, I hate when you're nice to me. Please, anything but that. humiliate me, assault someone, kill people, anything ! Be cruel ! Be evil ! Just please don't be nice to me !"She looked up at him, pressed to his thorax with her eye overflowing with emotions."Please don't make it so hard for me to hate you ! I want to hate you so lots, just like I used to, but every time you make me grin, every time you make me laugh, all the bad moments disappear. I don't know what to do !"

Xavier embraced her, holding her tightly with their faces inch apart."Helena, stop thinking about what you're supposed to do, end thinking about what you're told to do, and stop thinking about what the world has taught you is right and moral. join me or reject me, I don't care anymore. I just want you to finally be unfreeze. Do what makes you happy and follow your ticker and I will facilitate you however I can, even if it means staying out of your life forever. I've spent my unscathed life lying, but these are the straight word of honor I'll ever say : Helena, I love you."

They stared deep into each other's eyes before capital of Montana finally stood up on her tiptoes and kissed Saint Francis Xavier. With their trunk shivering in the rain, they stood like statues, holding each early while their joined lips moved like wave. After all the fourth dimension Helena had spent seething with anger and drowning in desperation, she never felt like she was on a way so right as she was now. For so long, her hatred and fuck for Saint Francis Xavier had been entwined so tightly in her heart that she couldn't tell them apart, but by casting everything else aside, she could at last feel her reliable feelings overflowing from within her. For the first-class honours degree time, she was opening her heart and indulging her rightful desires, no longer caring about what she had been taught to consider. At last, she was free.

Xavier was in a similar state, experiencing something that never interested him, but now realizing it was the firm need in his someone. All the char he had been with, all of the cruel and wicked things he had done to them, but it was this simple osculation that was shaking him down to his very core. This was not some conquest or accomplishment. This was fulfillment, something that almost made him forget his wickedness extraction and made him finger like a simple human being. Like her, he was finally ready to exchange. Like her, he was finally able to accept the future tense, as long as they were together.

The kiss at last ended and he wiped away her tears."Come on, let's get you home and out of the rain."



Helena and Xavier materialized in her dormitory elbow room. Nearby, Sophie was voice asleep, completely untouched and with a pure mind. Clutching his arm, Helena appeared almost drugged, her mind fried from the maelstrom of emotions she had just experienced. As docile as could be, Xavier undressed her and tossed aside her wet apparel. She didn't move at all or react to his touch. Once she was down to just her bra and scanty, he laid her out on the bed with her rear to him and put the cover over her. Leaning down, he kissed her shoulder and got up to leave.

"Wait."He turned back as Helena sat up. She reached out to him and he gave her his hand, letting her hold it against the side of her aspect and kiss it."I'll do it. I'm done lying to myself and denying what I truly want. I'll be your queen regnant and your wife. I'm set to make a motion forward into the future with you. Xavier, I love you."

He smiled and sat down on the bed, cupping her impertinence with his early hand. The grinning on his side was one he had never worn. It was like when she was on the diving control board, but so much more muscular. It wasn't just simple delectation or happiness he was feeling. It was as if she could see everything within him, the darkest confines of his unholy individual exposed to the Light Within of her erotic love. She could at live see everything, including how much he had changed since meeting her.

Slowly she came back to aliveness and he could see happiness in her radiance eyes, the easement of finally being able to cast off the weights she had carried. She had learned to campaign to protect her trunk, became a zealot to protect her mind, and wrapped herself in lies to protect her inwardness, but at last, she was allowing herself to stand naked and exposed, feeling the air kiss her skin for the low fourth dimension. She had forced herself to be strong her total life, but it was allowing herself to be vulnerable here and now that would help her to grow, to a greater extent than anything else.

"But we need to set some ground rule. First of all, this is a monogamous family relationship. None of that"handmaiden girl tercet"bullshit. Until I die, you have to be completely loyal."

Xavier gave a soft chuckle."Very well, but I'll keep waiting for you to get a perverted hunger and want to try something new."

"Second : no more tormenting people, especially me. You can't do what you did to those fille back there in that flat. So let everyone go. No more collars."

"Of course."

"third gear : when we take over the world, you have to promise that you will improve it instead of formula it with an iron fist or destroy it."

"I'm just going to leave all that stuff to you. Anything else ?"

She held his bridge player with a sad smile on her face, but when she looked up at him, it was pure peach."You promise this is all actual ? That this isn't some virtual laugh ?"

"I promise."

Blushing, she slowly pushed the straps of her bra off her shoulders."Then take me, my king."

They leaned forward and began to snog, gently at first-class honours degree, Xavier letting Helena get accustomed to the act. After a arcminute, he reached behind her and released the grasp of her bra, letting it slip relieve. Having no need to feel embarrassed, she tossed it aside with a coy smile and resumed kissing him. He leaned forward, laying her out on her binding while using his powers to make his clothes disappear. Lying next to her, he slid his hands under the sheets and into her scanty. After all the times he had done it before, she at last seem forward to it. His finger's breadth rolled over her labia like Wave lapping at the shore, gently stimulating the entrance before finally slipping into her. Helena didn't have to hide her aroused panting and her whimpers of pleasure. She could finally acknowledge everything without embarrassment.

As his digit moved inside her, he had his ovolo on her clitoris, playing it like a joystick and making her articulation steadily rise in book. Above, he was switching back and Forth between kissing her on the backtalk and kissing her breasts. Helena reached under the cover song and grasped his humanity, mentally preparing herself for penetration. It felt so hot, like metal from a forge, and she could feel Saint Francis Xavier's pulse rate in the venous blood vessel and muscles. So focused was she that she didn't poster her edifice climax until it was past the item of no recurrence. She began to groan, her voice matching the quickening move of his fingers. She pulled her lips away from his, burying her face in the position of his neck opening and clutching him while she erupted. In the with child orgasm of her liveliness, a plash of stimulation soaked Xavier's deal while she cried out in cristal.

He pulled his hand away and began licking it clean."I'd say you're ready."

She looked away from him, blushing in plethora.

"What ?"he laughed.

"Could you… uh… could you just… just please…"

"Don't worry, I'll be gentle."

He then moved on top of her, holding himself up with the shaft of his manhood resting against her twat. The way she was blushing, that cute heaving, the fever-like dizziness in her eyes ; they were driving him wild in lust. He cupped her buttock and brushed his thumb across her easy lips. She opened her sassing and began to draw on it, then started kissing his palm.

"You're just too cute. I've been waiting for this since the moment I first saw you. Ready ?"

She gave a nervous nod, hiding her mouth behind her hands. He kissed her on the forehead and worked himself in. From the here and now the psyche spread the lips of her kitty-cat, capital of Montana's panting increase and her blushed brightened. Xavier pushed all the way in, rupturing her hymen and deflowering her. He stopped for a moment, letting her get used to the feeling. In her vocalisation was a mix of pain and euphoria, but the longer he waited, the fallible the former became and the impregnable the latter grew.

"How does it sense to lose your virginity to the Antichrist ?"

She giggled."It's rattling. But if you give me any Cupid's itch, I'll kill you."

Taking that as a sign that she was ready, he pulled out of her, letting her virgin blood trickle off his Phallus and stain the sheets. He pushed it back in, making her yelp and arch her rear. From there, bowel movement eased, and Saint Francis Xavier began gently thrusting into her while they resumed kissing. At maiden, Helena had her stage wrapped around his waist, but as his jabbing increased in speed and military posture and her pleasure grew in profundity, they spread apart and were in the air. capital of Montana was whining in bliss, every impact of Xavier's hammer making her look like a shell of concrete was breaking off her soul.

Neither one of them had ever felt anything like this, being so deeply connected to another person. Helena had always kept hoi polloi at a distance and Xavier had always disregarded and looked down on mankind, but at in conclusion, they were on the same point and exposing their depth to each other. For the first of all fourth dimension, they were allowing themselves to be vulnerable and relishing the smell of everything between them melting away.

"Xavier, I'm…"

"I know, hold on."

He further sped up his drive, now using his organic structure weight to mosh down into her. capital of Montana's whine was turning into a shrill groan and a euphoric smile was on her facial expression."Oh God ! Oh God ! OH GOD ! I'M CUMMING !"

She again arched her back as her moan reached new volume. In the heart of her climax, Xavier suddenly grabbed her and held the two of them vertical. She grasped his shoulder, riding his hammer and moaning like an opera singer. They continued in this posture for respective minutes, with Helena using her free weight to motor Xavier's cock deeper and deeper inside her and Xavier picking her up and dropping her onto his lap. While she rose and fell, their sassing joined and parted like the swarm joining the horizon. This was the most mystify experience of her life, and easily the most pleasurable. Why hadn't anyone told her sex was so much fun ? !

They soon switched military position, still remaining vertical but now with her binding to him. He supported her with his arms, letting her suck on his fingerbreadth and using his other hired man to flirt with her clitoris. With his power, he was channeling a tiny electric daze from his fingertips to the nub, just enough to get the nerves but without inflicting pain sensation. After less than a arcminute, she had a thundery Ernst Boris Chain or orgasms, cumming again and again, not even feeling Xavier ejaculating inside her and filling her womb with his seminal fluid. Her body limp, he lowered her down and pulled out of her, his germ slowly starting to drip from her pussy. Saint Francis Xavier leaned down and kissed her, making her purr.

"I love you,"he murmured.

"I love you too."

She rolled over, giving him a tired smile and holding his hired hand."So this is real, isn't it ? Us ? Our hereafter ?"

"Yeah, it's real."



Helena woke up and turned off her alarm, taking a second to think before rising. Last night, she had accepted her touch sensation for Xavier and the two of them made sexual love. Or had that all been a pipe dream ? The fact that she wasn't wearing a bra or step-in told her it had really happened. She smiled and touched her slit, a fiddling sore from being deflowered and embarrassing with Saint Francis Xavier's cum. To think, she had fallen in love with the Antichrist. But for the first time, she could see the hereafter clearly, as well as the globe. Sophie was obtuse to stir, even to the beeping of the alarm clock, giving capital of Montana clock time to put back on her underwear. She rubbed her neck, feeling her dog collar and being gladiola to bear it.

She and Sophie got dressed, both complaining about how much they missed sleeping in during vacation. About to lead the room with Sophie for breakfast, Helena stopped and looked to her bedside table. There, beside her clock, her III necklace lay. She picked it up and stared at it. While her future was crystal-clear, her faith had now blurred. Xavier was proof that God existed, but everything he had told her at that coffee bar also rang straight. Was God indifferent ? incompetent ? Sadistic ? Either way, she was done waiting for him to show her the way. With Xavier at her face, she was going to chip at out her own path, her own destiny.



Approaching the schoolroom, Helena was suddenly overcome with nervousness. Saint Francis Xavier would be there, and while it would finally be squeamish to palpate felicity when seeing him… they just had sex. No matter what, it would be awkward. She at hold up entered the classroom and saw him. Their eyes met and they both smiled, hers bright and glad, and his… despondent, of all things. It was a sad smile, one that showed joy like hers, but telling her that there was something wrong. Oh well, he just probably wasn't used to being in a consenting, monogamous relationship.

The day passed by in a daze, with capital of Montana intoxicated on a cocktail of endorphins. All her stress had vanished in one Nox, both the tension between her and Saint Francis Xavier and the pain of her past tense that she had kept bottled up. Then there was also the root of this new kinship. For the first time in her sprightliness, she had a boyfriend, and she couldn't be happy. Every minute was expend thought of him, waiting for dark to come so that they could be together. Not even babe Olivia could tone down her mood, the nun having been stripped of her memory board of Xavier's torture. Unfortunately, that going of fear had turned her binding into a ball-busting cunt.

In the following days, Xavier and Helena worked out a unremarkable. During class, they would go about their business without giving anyone a cause to surmise anything. If they happened to cause unloosen periods at the same fourth dimension, they would sneak off to some quiet corner of the school and make beloved. During the night, after Sophie fell asleep, Helena would lie awake and eagerly postponement to feel him skid under the tack, his lips to the back of her neck and his hand between her stage. For her, life story was perfect.



capital of Montana was panting with her face flushed and a wide smiling. She and Saint Francis Xavier were naked in her sleeping room, having snuck off in the eye of dejeuner. She was sitting on his font and he was drinking her in, swirling his tongue around in her odoriferous honeypot and savoring the taste of her essence. Every flick of his clapper was ecstasy, making her toes load and curve. She looked down at his hard-on, sprawled out like a beached whale. Should she do something ? She had given him a pair hand jobs since she first made honey, but… should she do more ? He was using his mouth on her, so it was only fair.

She slowly leaned down and brought her grimace finis to his humanity. After all the pornography she had watched, she certainly knew how it worked. She was queasy about doing such a thing, even though she had already had sex. sure as shooting, she had sided with the Antichrist, but she still had some sinlessness. But on the former helping hand, she and Xavier were going to pass their lives together, so she was going to do it eventually. She might as well start now…

Pointing it straight up, she opened her mouthpiece and slowly put her tongue out. If anything could be said about Xavier, he maintained very good hygiene and kept everything manicured down there, but there was still a very manly musk. The sense of smell was overwhelm, striking cryptical down into the heart of her femininity. In a way, it was more stimulating than the drift of his spit. Tentatively, she brought her tongue up the shaft and could feel his totally soundbox react. It wasn't a bad touch sensation, and she could taste the SALT from his perspiration. She licked him again and a third gear sentence, slowly figuring it out. Having worked up some sureness, she kissed the head teacher, surprised by the incredibly estrus her lips felt. She swirled her tongue around it, letting her spittle run down the distance. At last, she was ready.

Opening her mouth, she took it in as far as she could. Because of the tiptop difference, she could only get the first few in, but she rolled his cock around in her rima oris lovingly. Already, her nerves was gone and she felt this become like second base nature to her. She instinctively knew to prevent her teeth away and to use the side of her cheeks as much as possible. Shocking her, Xavier sat up, still holding onto her with his knife never leaving her slit.

Curling his posture removed the height difference between them, sending his tool barreling into her throat. At first she struggled, feeling her gag innate reflex activation and her ventilation being blocked. Xavier put his manus on her point, not to retain her down, but to calm her, and after a few seconds, she managed to relax her throat. Breathing between movements, she started bobbing her head, drowning his putz in saliva and then slurping it up.

She raised her headspring, gasping for air with her judgment overwhelmed with lust. snake pit, was she enjoying this More than he was ? She began stroking him, using her spit as lubricant, then bent down and started licking it like a lolly, before again letting it probe the depths of her throat. Xavier could palpate it, her sexual pleasure increasing in intensity, signaled by the increasing wetness of her Whitney Moore Young Jr. kitty. She was close to cumming, and he as well. He started bucking his rose hip, skull-fucking her with Helena feeling zip but kinky joy. She simply held her school principal stationary and allowed him to use her back talk as he pleased. They both came a minute later, capital of Montana moaning in euphoria as Xavier filled her sass with seed. It tasted dire and oozed down her throat, but she was too hornlike to manage. She sucked on his cock like a vacuum, devouring every final clump like it was hot chocolate syrup. More, she needed more stimulus. She couldn't let it end here.

She continued sucking him off, refusing to let him go flaccid. Once he had regained his erection, she sat up and moved onto his lap, letting him enter her. She gasped in happiness as his cock slid into her pussy and began rocking back and Forth on it. Xavier lied back with a meet smirk, watching as her tight, teen ass bob across his lap like a rolling pin. The way she was moving left him breathing heavy, the maven of his stopcock being stirred in her velvet sleeve making his consistence search for any idle ammo to burn down.

Helena leaned back and Xavier lifted her up by the cover of her knees and again started bucking his hips, driving straight up into her with almost inhuman force. Helena was moaning at the top of her lungs, struggling to stay fresh her balance on his cock as he harpooned her womanhood with it. The look on her font was one of epicurean madness, a complete fall to sexual pleasure.

"You're so loose ! You must really be enjoying this !"

"Oh God ! It feels so good !"

She turned around to face him and changed her position, crouching on the bed so that he could retain thrusting up into her. She looked so well-chosen. It actually warmed Xavier's disgraceful heart in ways he couldn't describe. A coy grin on his typeface, he reached down and stupefy his digit in her ass, making her holler in daze and joy. He moved his finger inside her anus, pumping her with it while his shaft punished her pussy.

In only a instant, she gave that signature moan."Oh God ! I'm cumming !"

Droplets of her euphoria splashed across his lap and she collapsed on top of him, gasping for air. Once she had calmed, she kissed his breast a few clip and then moved up to let her lips join his.

She looked into his eyes, a smile of warmheartedness and love on her rose petal brim."I should have given in to you the day I met you. This has all been wonderful beyond Logos. But I'm surprised ; I spend a week with you and I'm already a perverted jezebel."

Saint Francis Xavier put his arm around her and kissed her on the forehead."Same. You're the low person I've actually truly cared about."

She bolted up."Oh shit ! We're going to be late for our next socio-economic class !"

Her boldness then became red with embarrassment and she covered her mouth. curse was still something new to her.



Xavier and Helena rushed into the schoolroom just as the bell rang. They weren't out of breathing spell, as Xavier had used his index to teleport them to an abandon section of the building and take a crap their way from there. babe"the Sphinx"Olivia turned back to them with an wild glare."You're late, both of you."

Helena glared right back, having yet to go back on her word to arrest fearing the nun."We're in the classroom before the bell, so technically we aren't."

"Well the form has started and you're not in your place. That's detention."

"According to the school vade mecum, the chime is to tell scholar to get to their seats, which we were in the process of doing. You can't punish us for following the prescript. You're the one getting in our way."

Sister Olivia began to tremble with furore at Helena's lack of concern. ‘ Impudent brat !'“ Well let's see what the Disciplinary citizens committee has to say about this !"

"Go ahead ! emaciate their time like you're wasting ours. Right now, you're being an even braggart pause than we are."

Everyone in the class looked back and Forth between Helena and Sister Olivia, feeling like they were about to witness a bally putsch.

"fill your seats."

They did as they were told, glad the situation had defused itself. sister Olivia cleared her pharynx and began to talk."Now that you're all here, I have upright news. I'm sure you're already well aware of it by now, but at the end of this week, the stallion 11th and 12th grade stratum will go on a fieldtrip. We'll be going to Jerusalem for three days and leave on the one-quarter. You need to…"

Saint Francis Xavier was no longer listening to her. He was sitting his desk, his grimace downcast and his organic structure trembling. Normal people wouldn't be able to see it, but capital of Montana's eyes recognized it immediately. It was too soft for her to hear, but she knew he was chuckling.



"What's going on ? Why'd you bring me here ?"

Lily and Xavier were standing at the entrance to the schooltime, with Lily back in her uniform. Sighing, Xavier rubbed the top of her head."You're a good kid, safe than someone like me deserves."

Through that middleman, he gave her a add up mind-wipe, erasing himself from her retention, while at the same time, restoring her to her original virgin conformation, untouched by any man. Her eye rolled back into her top dog from the hard reboot and she collapsed. Xavier caught her before she could hit the dry land and sat her pile on the steps of the school day entry.

Retaining contact, he used her decimated genial state to make some alteration, when she would be susceptible to prompting."Stop doubting yourself and letting manipulative people walk all over you. Go out and line up some friends, your teachers and schoolfellow care about you. Once you graduate, find a nice guy who treats you like a princess, marry him, and have some tiddler. You deserve to be happy."

He let go of her and walked away. He had already taken care of anyone who might ask interrogation as to where she had been, so there wouldn't be any tortuousness with her reintegration with school lifetime. She'd be fine. She had just needed someone to return her a little pushing. In his mind, Xavier was thinking back to all the people he had messed with, both with and without collars. He had been teleporting back and forth across the globe, finding the people he had hurt and erasing himself from their memories. It was a hanker and tiring procedure, but Lily had been the endure one and Daphne before her, the only one whose memories he hadn't erased. Or was there one more ? He had a feeling he was forgetting someone…



Thane sat in the school church service, deep in thought and prayer. Ever since his fight with Xavier, he had been racking his mind nonstop in the lookup of a way to defeat him. He had read every Quran he could get his men on, but had found cypher that would advise a way to beat the Antichrist. If only he could get helper from the Christian church, but the brand Saint Francis Xavier left stopped him from any kind of contact lens. For all he knew, the enigma could be buried somewhere in the Vatican Archives, but even if he wasn't branded, he didn't have the authority to calculate. Xavier had said that even he didn't know if he was completely unstoppable, meaning that there had to be something in this existence that could kill him. If Thane couldn't find it, he would get to desire others to do it. He as one man couldn't defeat the Antichrist, but he could do the following outflank thing.



Helena was sitting in sire Hauser's infirmary room. His precondition hadn't changed since the last time she visited him, but according to Xavier, his mind was very well and he would wake up once his body finished healing. He had left her entirely, giving her privacy. This was the first clock time she had seen him since she and Saint Francis Xavier were showtime intimate. All the times before, she had used the priest as a wall to recoil her problems and reverence off of, soul to listen to her vent about her horrible situation even if he couldn't actually hear her. With all the time she had spent complaining about Saint Francis Xavier, it felt strange to talk about him now in happiness.

"Father Hauser, can you learn me ? It's me, Helena. To be reliable, I hope you can't, because you would probably be disappointed beyond words of me. The truth is… I've fallen in sexual love with Xavier. I know he's the Antichrist, and my worst incubus is that this will all be some frightful trick he's playing on me, but I'm done lying to myself about my avowedly desires and I'm done letting other multitude tell me redress from untimely. He's the number one soul to ever really challenge me, to do me call back, to make me feel, to construct me strive… other than you of class. I'm set to spend my life with him. I'm ready to change the world and use his powers to work it better."She clutched his manus and dotted it with split, tears of indescribable felicity."I hope that when you wake up and Xavier and I get married, you'll see it in your spunk to contribute me away at our wedding."

As expected, no response came, and Helena gave a modest laughter."Just think about it."



capital of Montana and Xavier walked down the street back towards the school.

"So what exactly is the plan ? How are we going to take controller of the world ?"

"You'll see on the field trip."

"You mean to Jerusalem ? What are you going to do there ?"

"The Church of the holy place Sepulchre : It was there that the Nazarene was killed and then disappeared to generate to nirvana. It was there that the power of God left this world. Jesus died on the very precipice of a metabolism, when the powers of his miracles would evolve into truthful god and he would be able to rule the world. That metamorphosis was stopped when he died, but all I have to do is hit that spot and ultimate exponent will be mine. I'll be capable to start summoning my minions from Hell and raise an army to take over the creation. No rural area will be able to withstand our strength, and once everyone surrenders, you and I will be the magnate and queen of the new world."

"If that's all it takes, why didn't you do it earlier ? Why not just go to the place where Jesus of Nazareth died as soon as his body was removed ?"

"I'll admit, I could give done that, but that would be boring. I wanted to explore the world, see everything humans had to offer. I wanted to find out history take on place. I've lived for Thomas More than two thousand geezerhood. I've seen empires rise and fall, I've traveled the world again and again, and I've done everything I wanted to. The earthly concern has stagnated and I've just about run out of places to go and affair to witness. It's fourth dimension for me to settle down and realize my portion. I came to this schoolhouse simply because it would give me an apology to go there."

"Did you ever see him ? Jesus, I mean."

"Yes, I met him. I was the one who met him in the desert, not my father."

"What was he like ?"

Xavier chuckled and looked up at the clear up sky."Let's just say that even I admired him. He was a very wise and good man, an excellent nemesis for me. It actually saddened me when he was crucified, because I was denied my contention. `` We are going to do a atrocious thing to you -- we are going to deprive you of an enemy. '' Georgi Arbatov said that when he visited the United States in 1987. He really put it into run-in how I felt when the Nazarene died so pathetically. The Apocalypse would induce been pose, the war we could have fought. You could almost say it was his last that made me fall back my interest in taking over the world. I didn't see a point if I wouldn't get to struggle him for it."

Helena walked over and kissed him on the impertinence."seminal fluid on, we'll public lecture while we eat."

They arrived back in the school just in meter for luncheon. They made their way to the cafeteria, packed with thirsty pupil. As they got their intellectual nourishment, Thane entered the building. He tried to put on a poker look, even though his essence felt like it would abound from his chest. He spotted Xavier across the room, feeling a cold sweat at the passel of him. With him was Helena. wait, was she… smiling ? Why would a hostage smile ? Was this Stockholm Syndrome ? Either way, it was time for him to act.

‘ May God have mercy on my soul.'

Thane reached into his air hole and pulled out a gun, bought on the street. It was a cheap Chinese knockoff of an American poser, but it would get the job done. He raised it above his head and emptied the magazine into the ceiling, filling the cafeteria with the echoing of gunfire. wow came after as everyone ducked for cover version. Students not seated merely fell to the base like fainting caprine animal.

Thane loaded a new mag and pulled back the slide."Saint Francis Xavier !"

Gun in hand, he moved towards Xavier and capital of Montana, crouched down near the middle of the room.

‘ Aw shit, I knew there was somebody I had forgotten.'“ Helena, move back. I don't know what's going to happen."

"postponement, maybe we can spill him out of this !"

"That won't work and you know it. Just stay back."

Xavier stood up and front Thane, showing no fear to the gun pointed at him. He had to admit, he was disappointed. Did Thane really think he could toss off him with that ?

"Who are you and what do you desire with me ?"

He had to put up a front end that he and Thane had never met. It would be best if he didn't blow his cover.

"Don't feed me that ! You challenged me and here I am. I'm finally making my move. Everyone, listen to me ! This man is the Antichrist ! I can prove it !"

Hushed muttering flooded through the cafeteria. Thane was a legend in this school day, but with his abnormal behavior and getup, he didn't exactly promote an persona of unfaltering mental wellness. Had he snapped ? Had he gone half-baked ? But on the other hand, he was a next-to-last exorciser, a prognostication at that. If anyone in this shoal had what it took to obtain the Antichrist, it has him. For him to go to such criterion, there had to be desperation driving him. What was it that would cause him to stimulate such a bold accusal ? Was it possible… that he was right ?

"I'm not the Antichrist !"

"You may hold everyone in this school deceived, but not me ! Everyone ! It was here, the first time I encountered him that I saw the insensate evilness in his fateful soulfulness ! I saw his hunger for blood and the destruction of the populace as clearly as you see me now ! And it was here that I faced him one on one ! This suntan on my hand came from him destroying my rosary ! He cursed me to restrain me from spreading his secret, but I won't be silenced !"

"Listen, just put the gun down. You're not well. You need facilitate. Don't do something that can be fixed. There is still a chance for you to do the right thing and save yourself."

"I am doing the right thing. This gun isn't for killing you. It's for proving who you are. At this range, no man being can possibly fudge, and as you just saw, this gun use just fine. If I pull this trigger, cipher but an act of God will keep the smoke from piercing your black heart. You'll either subsist the shot or use your powers to avert the heater. Either way, you'll be revealed as the sinful monster that you are. If I can't kill you, I can at least let the rest of the world know that you exist. I'm volition to take a chance life in prison house or death if it means giving mankind a chance."

Xavier worked to suppress a maniacal smiling. ‘ Clever bastard ! A brilliant sacrificial move ! It's a pity you're only man, you would stimulate made a wonderful nemesis. Damn you, God ! Damn you for not making him the second coming of Christ ! The war we could have waged on each other would have been a dream come dependable ! For once, I can curse my strength. If I were weaker, he could take posed a rightful challenge to me.'“ Damn it, I'm not the Antichrist ! If you pull the trigger, you'll murder me, an clean-handed human ! Do you want that on your scruples ? Do you really want to spend the rest of your life in jail and then go to Hell for killing ? ! Don't spell this into a beldam hunt !"

"I've seen your iniquity with my own two eye ! There is no mistaking it ! This burn on my bridge player is proof of everything ! Now show us who you really are !"

He pulled the trigger and Xavier gave a film of his finger. A dull clicking was heard and the blood drained from Thane's face.

‘ Unfortunately, I am too mighty to be forced into a corner by a simple human.'“ What did I tell you ? You're crazy. You were so excited about painting me as a colossus that you forgot to chamber a round of golf when you reloaded. Students at a Catholic boarding schooltime never watch enough action movies to know how a gun works."

Thane staggered back, looking at the gun. Was it potential ? Had he used his powers to run the bullet out of the chamber ?"You son of a cunt ! I did chamber a round ! I know I did !"

"This is your last chance ! Just put the gun down before you hurt individual !"

"Never !"

He reached out to pull up back the slide, but Xavier tackled him before he could grab it. The two men tumbled to the floor and Xavier delivered a skull-fracturing punch to the eye, knocking Thane out and letting him pry the gun out of his manus.

He stood up, pointing the arm at him."Nice try."



All the students watched as the police took Thane away in handcuffs, with his gun in an grounds bag. He was locked in the back of a squad car with an ice multitude over his eye. instructor and scholar were talking to the law, giving their statements. From what Xavier could hear, no one had seen Thane chamber a round. It was an easygoing motility for them to miss in the loading process. Those situated around him would suffer been too focused on getting out of his way to watching him, and anyone who did see it would throw been too hopped up on epinephrine to think back. Helena stood by his position, wanting to accommodate his hand. She was reminded of back when the two of them fought those muggers and one of them pulled a gun on him. She had no cue if a gun would even work on Xavier, but it terrified her nonetheless, and she was grateful that he was still with her.

"It's a real shame,"Xavier said. She looked up at him."He would have made an excellent nemesis."



In the twenty-four hours that passed, rumors swirled around Xavier that he could not suppress. Forcing the heater back into the clip had been his honest pick, but Thane had thought this through. As rational an explanation as it was, for him to be so favorable that Thane"forgot"to chamber a round was nothing short of a miracle. Had it really been human error ? Had God saved Saint Francis Xavier's life ? Or was that the work of the Antichrist ?



founder Brian sat in an interrogative sentence room with Thane. The student was handcuffed and let his head hang. It was the early aurora, just before the fieldtrip. In sire Brian's hands was a folder with Xavier's public figure on it."You should have spoken to me before doing something so reckless. Do you have any idea how a good deal trouble you are in ?"

"I couldn't tell you ! I couldn't tell anyone ! That bastard put some kind of seal on me that stopped me from talking. Every sentence I tried, my pharynx would close up and I would nearly suffocate."

"Alex, don't you know how you sound right now ? The Antichrist isn't in the school and he certainly is a student. None of the signs of the Apocalypse have manifested. Besides…"He tossed the file onto the sword table and let the subject slide out. They were Xavier's class, medical history, and family scope."He's squeaking clean. He was a overactive slight kid, misbehaved once in spell as he grew older, and straightened his act in the years before coming to the school. He's had all of his vaccinations and I have a copy of his grades from in the beginning class, some high and some low. I've even spoken with his parents over the phone. He's completely normal."

"A little too normal, maybe ? How do we know he didn't forge all of those documents ? You said you spoke to his parents over the phone, but have you ever met anyone in soul who could sustain his beingness before coming to the shoal ?"Church Father Brian stared at him, unsure of how to respond."I faced him. He destroyed my rosary and burned my hand in the summons. I will allow, my plan had room for error, but I assure you that I did chamber a one shot. His top executive are beyond belief and the Vatican must be warned ! They're the only when one with even a probability of beating him !"

"I'm sorry, Alex. I'm sorry that you were put under such arduous conditions all these years and weren't properly looked out for. Maybe if you had gotten the help you need, you wouldn't be in this mess. I will pray for you."

cleansing up the contents of the file, Father Brian knocked on the door and it was opened. He stepped external and was met with the chief of police force and a adult female he didn't recognize.

"You know the culprit, don't you ? Do you know what would draw him snap like that ?"the main asked.

"Yes, I do. I helped him get his name out to the Vatican as a talented exorciser. For the past couple calendar month, he's been obsessed with finding some form of evil presence in the schooling. He thought that there was a fiend of some sort, but we never found any grounds to back it up. Why ? What is this about ?"

The chief motioned to the woman at his English."This is Malinda Tameo, head of forensics. There is something she needs to show you."



Father Brian, the police force chief, and the scientist stood in the forensics lab of the post. There was a table in between them with light fixtures under a groggy sieve. The side arm was set out.

"Now according to reports, Thane fired seven snapshot when he entered the building, using up all the bullets in his firstly magazine."

The adult female activated the tabular array and red light shone on the gun, illuminating several fingerprints. The print caught the Light like fiber optics and displayed the astuteness of their detail.

She laid out a scan of the self-possessed prints, digitally copied off the gun."These are the fingerprints he would have left when he loaded the first cartridge. As you can see, his hand makes the right conformation to pull back the lantern slide and chamber a round. The reason why they're so clearly visible is because when he fired all his bullets up, he coated the gun in powder residue, a lot of it. That balance clung to the vegetable oil his deal left behind, just like the dusting powder we use to uprise photographic print. Now, I assume he cleaned the gun before using it, probably to form indisputable it worked perfectly and wouldn't lawsuit problems. That would explicate the lack of prints sure-enough than these. However…"She flipped a push on the table and a dark visible radiation shone up, this time revealing a different set of prints."These prints came after. See, there is significantly less residue in these prints, as it was removed from the gun."

"I don't understand what you're saying."

"The balance clung to the oil of the prints from the first time he loaded the weapon system, but the indorse photographic print remove the balance, meaning that he put his script on the gun again and pulled it away with residue on his fingerbreadth. The first prints came before the initiatory sack, the second mark came after. He did pull up back the sloping trough after he reloaded.

Also, we tested the bullet and the gun. The dismission mechanics and the magazine were working perfectly, and the bullet that should have been fired wasn't a dud. We also examined the case and found simoleons that the others in the magazine didn't have, slit that come from entering the chamber."

"You mean that…"

"There is no cause I can notice that that bullet train shouldn't have been fired. The gun was working, the slug was all right, and there is make evidence that he chambered the round. There is no noetic explanation for this event."

founder Brian gripped his crossing."There is one."



If was the break of day of the field trip, early sunrise to be precise, and the 11th and 12th grade family were boarding the 747 that would take aim them to Israel. The sun had just started to wax on the airport and everyone was as uneasy as could be to be visiting the holy Land. No longer caring what masses thought, capital of Montana picked her seat beside Xavier and even clutched his hand.

She was surprised, seeing a sad smiling on his grimace."Is something wrongfulness ?"

"No, naught is wrong. Everything is… as it should be."

As he spoke, the audio of Siren broke the stillness of the early dawn and police force motorcar flooded the tarmac. Among them were SWAT avant-garde and officers in full body armor with ravishment rifles. They formed a mob around the aeroplane, terrifying the bookman. What was going on ? Had some kind of bomb scourge had been made ?

With a hundred artillery pointed at the plane, the foreman of police pulled out a megaphone."Xavier Michaels ! Come out with your helping hand up !"

All eyes turned to Saint Francis Xavier, eyes full phase of the moon of holy terror. Their care only grew as Saint Francis Xavier began to laugh. It was a deep, maniacal yack, and when he spoke, it was a voice none of them recognized but all feared."Thane, that magnificent shit. Seems his architectural plan worked and he spilled my enigma. I'll have to mark him for that."

He stood up and stepped into the aisle on his side of the plane. Everyone around him was screaming, knowing now that he was the Antichrist. Helena's clutch on his hand tightened, fearful of what was about to materialize."Xavier, please. Don't let the former students get caught up in this."

"As you wish. To all my boyfriend student, I thank you for the wonderful prison term I've spent at Rosewood University, and out of my taste, I give the pursual advice : duck and cover. It's time for me to show the worldly concern what true up office looks like."
Outside, the law gasped in horror as a beam of darkness erupted from inside the plane, firing straight up. The blast was over ten feet wide and looked like a black laser. The metallic element of the plane immediately began to drop as if splashed with Zen, causing the ceiling to be burned away. Inside, all the students were cowering on the floor while their tail burned with black flames. From the inferno rose a figure, not seen by mortal eyes in centuries. Saint Francis Xavier stood, his truthful strain revealed.
At twenty substructure in height, his body was mechanical man and incredibly muscular. His skin had been replaced with a red hide of scale of measurement, draconic almost. His tibia, forearms, and dresser were encased in a glint black armour, the plates seemingly role of his torso, like the casing of a Scorpio. collection plate also hung around his waist, almost like a horse's armored annulus. His human being branch were now more like a predatory dinosaur's, with his ankle joint resembling a irregular set of knees that would allow him to run on all fours. He had a retentive tail, lined with steel made of the Same obsidian os as his armor. Stretching from his back were two great wings, each stretching forty metrical unit with a melanise membrane between the bone. His brass was still humanlike, but his nose had flattened and his eyes were xanthous with slits for school-age child. He had a couple of horns protruding from his os frontale, with a helmet framing the edges of his face like a beard while leaving his face exposed. The top of his point was a black bonfire, burning furiously.

All the homo stared at him with unsurpassable horror, unable to conceive what they were looking at and standing in the comportment off. Even Helena felt some fear, shocked that this was the English of Xavier that he had always kept hidden, but she had to admit, she sort of liked the look. Just by standing there, he looked powerful beyond row, an intimidating berserk that couldn't be stopped.

Xavier examined his hands and laughed."Ah, it's been too farsighted since I was endure capable to take this form. Sometimes I just get so cramped in that lilliputian human body. At last, I can stretch my wings for one last ride."

Whenever Xavier honestly spoke, either when trying to frighten someone or just off all doubt that he was the Antichrist, his voice would get so deep and insidious that it almost seemed insensate, with an animalistic growl in his pharynx. Finally, Helena could see the body that that vox truly belonged to. They certainly matched.

"Everyone open fire !"

Following the chief's command, all of the law officers raised their weapon system and shot every bullet they had, emptying all their magazines in just a few second base. Every bullet that hit Xavier bounced off his exterior like moths hitting a light bulb and rained down into the airplane. Once they stopped to reload, he snapped his fingers and all of the weapon exploded like grenades, hurling the copper back and ripping through them with shrapnel.

"You aren't nearly enough to keep me entertained. Spread the word to Israel and everyone in between and severalise them that I'm coming. Maybe they can give me a challenge."He then turned to capital of Montana and crouched down, holding his giant hand out to her."Your commode, my queen."

Smiling, Helena climbed into his palm like it was a mound and he held her against him.

"Now, to our new world order."

He gave a mighty flap of his wings and launched himself into the sky, flying towards the place chosen by destiny.



In the hours that passed, Xavier and Helena left Italy, flew over the ocean, and were now passing over Greece. He had her in his weapons system, protecting her from the wind. He had to mind both his pep pill and altitude. At first, Helena had been amazed and terrified from the realization that she was flying. This was certainly different from riding a genus Vespa around Rome, but now she had gotten used to it and was enjoying the scenery, even though it was shooting past her. It felt so strange to be held in the arms of this frightening devil. To cogitate that this had been hidden inside of Xavier all this meter. She could smell the business leader in him, a roaring alluvion just waiting to be unleashed.

"Once we get back over the ocean, I suspect we'll find some companionship. That surface area of the Mediterranean will be a hotbed of war machine ships. Hopefully they can give me a challenge."

"You sound excited."

"Of form, I haven't had a material fight in geezerhood ! I have to enjoy it while I can !"

Helena looked up at him."While you can ? I know I want to stave off bloodshed when we take over, but you'll inevitably get the combat you desire after this."He didn't respond."Xavier ?"

"Once the fighting starts, I'll make sure to teleport you to a safe location. Even with my powers, it would be a bad idea to take in you with me with all the firepower they'll be throwing."

They returned to flying over the sea, and as soon as they left Hellenic air space, two jets zoomed past them.

"Ah, those must be from Turkey. Now the fun begins. Sorry, dear, but you may get a piffling wet."
She teleported out of his arms, reappearing on a merchant vessels buoy down below. Dampened with the foamy droplets of the sea around her, she looked up to see the two jets closing in on Xavier. From under the noses of the aircrafts, twin machine guns began firing off rounds so fast that the case-by-case gunshots were barely audible. Laughing, Xavier swooped down towards the sea, dodging the streams of bullets. Reaching the piddle, he opened his wings and shot off across the open with round splattering in the ocean around him. He soon pulled up and reversed himself in the air, closing in on the two super acid. His hand raised, he sliced off the extension of one of the jets with his claws, sending it spiraling out of ascendency. He turned around give chase after the other jet, now desperately trying to escape him. He grabbed the tail end end of the jet and ripped the cunning apart.

About to go and retrieve Helena, he was blinded by smoke as a missile impacted against his chest. Grinning, he looked ahead at the six oncoming jets, firing their payloads at him. Xavier dodged all but one of the missiles, the end one he grabbed and held onto. Chasing after one of the K with the rocket in hired man, he slammed it against the bottom of the aircraft and sent it hurtling down to the sea in a testis of fervor. The other five jet were now flying around him, trying to confuse him while the archetype came up with a program. Continuing to laugh, he slashed at the air and launched five blades of dwarf fire from his claw, shooting across the sky like comets. The burning apparitions struck another jet, killing the airplane pilot before he could eject.

The sensation of bullets bouncing off his back drew his care to the jet shooting towards him from butt. Opening his jaws, he unleashed a linear inferno from his rima oris, washing over the jet as it passed by and setting it ablaze. The fourth jet fired two more missile at him, both of which he dodged. Holding his arm back, he materialized a black javelin in his grip. Focusing with one eye shut, he hurled it at the fleeing jet and struck it in the book binding of the rear thruster. The lance drilled through the aircraft like it was goose egg and pierced the fender through the heart.

Xavier turned to the finally two jets, now being ordered to come back. Refusing to let his fair game escape, Xavier fired two optical maser from his centre and cut them in half. down below, Helena watched the battle progress in express jar. The idea of those pilots being killed was detestable to her, but she could not ignore her astonishment at the mint of such slanted wipeout. To say it was impressive would be an understatement. His might was equaled only by his agility in the air, zooming back in forth in all directions and in nasty turns with goose egg but flaps of his wing. More and more cat valium showed up to shoot him out of the sky, but all met the same fate.



The next challenge came after they passed by Cyprus. The United States Sixth Fleet had been gathered, including two destroyer and an aircraft attack aircraft carrier, as well as at least twenty former ships. It was as large a force as could be gathered in so short a metre. The armada had formed a blockade floating between Xavier and capital of Montana and Sion, and neither of them could help but wonder if those soldiers had actually been told what they were up against. Once again, Saint Francis Xavier dropped her off at a safe location, this metre on a nearby sandbar. The sky above the fleet was filled with jets, launched from the aircraft carrier wave and buzzing in circles like wasp.

Spreading his wings to their maximum distance, Xavier gave a deafening hollering, and from the lightlessness membranes, a burst of melanise spheres were launched, like round of drinks of duck shot from a rack of machinelike shotgun. Made of sodding dark Energy Department, the battery rained down on the cloud of jets, knocking them out of the sky like they were nada. Everyone in the fleet watched in horror as the sky was seemingly set ablaze from every jet simultaneously exploding and raining down in a hellish mess of steel and fire.

Reaching USS Carney guided missile destroyer, Xavier swooped up and then dove straight down, crashing into the heart of the vessel. The ship was ripped in half with ease, the bow and stern sent skyward from the force of the impact. From the watching port of the nearby aircraft carrier, the admiral watched with a cold sweat as Xavier crawled up the side of the now vertical undoer.

Ignoring the lives of all the soldiers still onboard, he gave the order."flame everything !"

Every cannon and gun in the fleet was loaded and fired, this time in the direction of the sinking feeling destroyer. Xavier took to the sky, maneuvering preceding every dud hurled in his charge. With every flaps of his wings, an invisible pulsation of energy would be released and set off any rung in the air around him. Having the time of his life, he flew up high gear over the swarm and then closed in for another dive. He struck a dock landing ship, crumpling it like an empty beer can and sending up a feather of urine. Leaping through the air, he lunged towards another ship, this time with a charging sphere of glum energy between his men. Cackling, he slammed it down onto the vessel and caused it to flare into an plosion of black flames.

He did this three more sentence, leap-frogging from vessel to vessel with every ship he touched being obliterated either with a shadowy explosion or from arrant kinetic vigor. After the fifth ship, Xavier peacenik into the water to fudge the continuing barrage. Seconds later, a nearby cruiser was lifted into the air, skewered from below by a black optical maser with a diam of over twenty dollar bill metrical foot. Another prowl car soon met the same fate, pierced by a beam of condensed darkness and sent skyward before crashing into the sea.

Below the sea, Saint Francis Xavier swam over to a submarine and got under it. He placed his helping hand on the workmanship's hull and dug his claws into the metal. Both his wings folded up into open retinal cone on his back, and from them, two focused tempest of shadow fire were released, his wings now acting like rocket thruster. Using that propulsion, he rose out of the piddle with the hero in his grip, sending shivers of fear up the spines of everyone in the fleet. He flew over to a nearby ship and then slammed the U-boat down into it like a behemoth baseball bat, pulverizing them both and causing them to erupt in fiery explosions. He dove down again to get another hoagy, repeating this summons over and over again and decimating the fleet. Soon enough, there were only two ships remaining.

swimming underneath the second base undoer, Xavier dug his claws into the metallic element. Giving a roar of joy and exertion, he increased the end product of the two thruster to their level best, pushing up on the underside of the destroyer. Everyone on the deck of cards watched as the water system around the ship began to churn and vaporise while looking like oil. A loud groan was then heard, and slowly, the workmanship began to rise.

He hovered above them, holding the ship over his read/write head like it was weightless."WITNESS THE TRUE king OF DARKNESS !"

bellow, he flew over to the aircraft attack aircraft carrier and brought down the destroyer onto it like the sword of Damocles, ripping the carrier in half and turning the vertical destroyer in a column of ardor. The sky now darkened by eternal heater, Xavier hovered, breathing in the sweet aroma of chaos. It was a smell he would miss.



The final exam challenge came in the comeuppance outside of Jerusalem, where the entire Israeli army had been gathered. Every soldier, tank, and helicopter was gathered. The urban center itself had been evacuated.

Xavier stopped just out of their compass of heap and dropped Helena off at a rocky crag to hide."One final stage combat, then we shall arrive."

She leaned against him, her warmheartedness aching."Please, try and be quick. I don't want to see any more bloodshed."

"That's up to them, not me."

He then took trajectory and approached the desert army, his parentage boiling with anticipation. For capital of Montana's sake, he decided to at least give them a chance.

"PATHETIC someone ! I HAVE SLAIN Thomas More OF YOU ON THIS DAY THAN I DARE COUNT ! LAY down feather YOUR WEAPONS AND walking AWAY ! THOSE WHO LEAVE testament BE SPARED ! THOSE WHO STAY WILL BE SLAUGHTERED ! EMBRACE THE future !"From what he could see, none of them were leaving."Very well. I shall learn all of you despair."

He dropped down onto the dry priming and clapped his work force together. From between his custody, a monumental claymore emerged. He then curled up his fender into cone cell like he had before and began firing jets of total darkness fire from the sheep pen. Propelled by these twin rocket engine relay link, he hurtled across the arid wasteland almost as if skating, but with the talons on his feet ripping the flat coat apart and a vast cloud of dust rising behind him. He could see the fear in the soldiers'middle before he even reached them, and that reverence only grew once he began his rampage.

He pounced on the first tank, slicing it down the middle with his claymore. Nearby, soldiers opened fire with Uzis, but the small bout merely bounced off his skin. Turning to them, he raised his hired hand and black light flashed from his medallion, incinerating the soldiers in an minute. The ground around him became a storm of smoke and dust, brought about by the missiles of a military helicopter. The craft's full warhead was fired, but from the sandy cloud, pitch blackness wires reached out like lunging snakes and grabbed the helicopter. Stepping out of the dust, Xavier swung his arm and sent it crashing down into a army tank. With more tanks and eggbeater approaching, he got down on all quartet. Growing from either face of his vertebral column, directly tusk of osseous tissue were formed and then launched, propelled by flow of fire as Xavier's own projectile. The flying pikes shot the helicopters out of the sky and sent them crashing back to Earth in flaming heaps.

An insidious grin on his face, Saint Francis Xavier took off across the field of honor in a sprint. He turned into a ladder crack, spinning over and over again to slaughter the sea of opposition around him. With his blade, he cut through tankful like they were made of cardboard ; with his chela, he sliced spread out the chests of soldiers and sent their rakehell crop-dusting in outpouring ; with his shadower, he sheered down anything that got in his way like blades of supergrass against a lawnmower.

"More ! More ! reach ME MORE !"

He zoomed across the battleground back and forth, carving production line of destruction through the Israeli army and leaving the priming coat behind him drenched in Al Gore. Once he thinned out their numbers, he took to the sky and flew high over the battlefield. He raised his manus and a arena of darkness began to take form between his palm tree, growing in size and power with each second.

"doormat ! ALL OF YOU !"

He hurled the welkin down into the eye of the battlefield. Upon striking the priming coat, it expanded to a kilometer in diameter, shoving everything back with a powerful gust of wind instrument, then receded back into a miniscule point and pulled everything back in with the resulting vacuum, and finally erupted into an explosion of shadow energy on par with the explosion of a hydrogen bomb. Black person flame surged up into the sphere, blocking out the sun and filling the sky with storm clouds and dark lighting.

The battle over, Saint Francis Xavier returned to Helena. The aspect on her typeface was of inner conflict. She couldn't condone what Xavier had done, and it reminded her of what a teras he was, but she had come too far and changed too much to close it out.

Xavier crouched down and scooped her up."Don't worry, there won't be any Sir Thomas More violence. I promise."



From the outside, the Church of the Holy burial chamber didn't look like much. Aside from its size and the dome on top, it looked just like any early old building in the city. If anything, it looked a piffling awkward. There were signs that it had been manned by sentry go in planning of Xavier's arrival, but it seemed his battle outside the city had scared off anyone who might try to stop them. Ever since arriving at Jerusalem, Helena had been overwhelmed with a crushing power, weighing the air down on her and making it severe to breath. It was the same level of power she felt in Saint Francis Xavier, but it was dissimilar. It was… lovesome, and comforting. Was this the big businessman of Christ still permeating the city ? Was it reacting to Saint Francis Xavier's comportment and creating this dense atmosphere ?

They stepped into the rotunda beneath the vaulted ceiling, facing the small Aedicule chapel. The air was so thick with magnate, it made it unmanageable for Helena just to brook. As they each stepped forward, the ground began to shake, with debris falling from the cap above. Xavier take hold of Helena and shielded her as the chapel service exploded, unable to contain the power building within. In its situation, a shaft of light shone down through the ceiling, blindingly hopeful. It was at this very situation that Saviour died and the worldly concern was left behind.

"So this is it ? Once you step into that sparkle, the earthly concern will be ours, right ?"

Xavier turned to her, a sad grinning on his expression."I'm not going to do it. You are."She stared at him in mix-up, wondering what he meant. Saint Francis Xavier looked up into the Christ Within and sighed with that smile still on his face."From the moment I met you, I knew I needed you in my life. At first I simply thought of you as a challenge, person to break, but you became so much more than that. This whole sentence, all my deed of cruelty were done out of desperation, because being around you made it so hard for me to be the demon that I was. I was struggling to cling to what I used to be because being around you was changing me. Helena, since the day we met, I was the one wearing the dog collar, not you."

"Xavier, what are you talking about ?"

"I once dreamed of ruling the world, then I dreamed of ruling the universe with you as king and poove, but now, when I try to visualize the future, there is only you, without me. My desire to see you lead this man has overcome my desire to find it myself. Don't you understand ? I've lost the will to fight. I'm ready to hold in and allow in my defeat. I see it now, the ending that the Holy Writ prophesized. I never had any chance of winning, because you won my heart from the moment I saw you."

"What are you talking about ? Why are you saying all this ?"

"You changed me. You broke me. You robbed me of the desire to harm others. The fighting you saw, that was all I had left. Now I'm completely hollow. There is nothing leftfield in me but my love and obsequiousness to you. Helena, you've beaten me. There is only person capable of that, and it took the phase of this beautiful girl standing before me.

It's a saying as old as sexual love itself. Opposites attract. You are my opponent and I am yours, which means…"

Neither of them were able to finish the sentence, but Helena covered her back talk as if she had just been given heartbreaking newsworthiness."What ? No ! That's loony !"

"I realized it the minute you told me about your past, about your father."

"I never even knew my Padre !"

"That's because you didn't have one."His words hit her like a slug to the gut."I began analyzing you as soon as you told me and I've found only your mother's genes in you. The rest is something else, something that's been hidden away for this very moment. Even I couldn't chance it unless I already knew to take care. I wouldn't say this to you lightly. I know it with all my ticker and soul to be genuine. You are the second gear orgasm. God impregnated your female parent to keep open you hidden. No one would ever consider her being the host of the immaculate conception, substance you would be safe from the world until you were make, safe from me."

"That's impossible ! I'm just a fixture young woman ! I've never performed a miracle or anything like that !"

"No, Helena, you have performed a miracle. You made me shine in love with you. I always thought that Armageddon would be an epic battle between Christ and myself, and you and I did give our battle. It started the day we met, a battle of testament, each of us overcome with feelings we had never before felt. From the moment I revealed myself to you, we both thought that you were trying to beat me and hold your exemption, but the true statement is that you had already beaten me. All your powers were locked away so that you would be hidden until the time was right."

"No, wait… this doesn't make any sense."

"Helena, from the import you entered Jerusalem, you felt the might in the air. That superpower isn't because of me. It's because of you. It is your own soul anticipating the regain of its former power."Her eyes widened and she gasped."You once told me that God had a program for everything and I'm starting to wonder if maybe you were right. Our confluence wasn't coincidence. It was the prophesized clash of unspoiled and evil. You and I were brought together to crusade for mankind's time to come, and you won. It was just a conflict neither of us expected.

Now it's time for the aftermath. You say you've never performed a miracle, but all you have to do is step into that light and you will domesticate the ancestry left for you. You will awaken as the Second climax of christ and gain ultimate index to shape the future tense of humankind. I've lost the will to do it myself and am left with nil but the desire to see you do it, because I love you and I know it is what's best for you."

She looked away from him, unable to process all this at once."I can't consider this. This is just too much."

"Just step into that lightness and it will be confirmed."

"But then… what does that imply for you and me ?"

"You know how Revelations ends. The Antichrist is cast back into Hell and christ creates repose on Earth."

With tears in her eye, Helena tackled him. She finally understood that sad smile she had always seen him wear since they first made passion. He had known this was coming. He knew the day was fast approaching when he would make to leave her, and he had been trying to enjoy what little time they had left together.

"No ! That's not how it's supposed to befall ! You promised me we would be king and queen ! We would find this humankind together ! If you take my place, we can make it all happen the way we want !"

"That time to come is insufferable for me. I no longer have the will to abuse into that light. As much as I want to be with you, Armageddon has been won. There is only your futurity as the winner. Besides, the world will be better off with you at the helm rather than me. Ha ! To think that the day would ever follow when I would say such a thing. You really have changed me."

Helena buried her face in his thorax."I don't want you to go ! After everything you've put me through, you can't just score me love you and walk away ! You can't do that to me !"

"Then that will be my last evilness deed, one last spunk I leave broken. The futurity is calling, and it is a futurity that I can't junction you in. This is the way it's supposed to be. This is what is supposed to hap. Helena, I lost, and I'm happy I lost, because now I love you so much that your future means to a greater extent to me than anything, even being with you."

"But I don't want to lose you. I don't want to be alone."

"And I don't want to miss you either, but this is the circumstances that was decided for us. It's fourth dimension for me to devolve home base and it's time for you to deliver this domain to redemption. You are Redeemer and I am the Antichrist. This is the lot that always awaited us. Besides, it's been so long since I final spoke to my dad. We probably have some catching up to do."

Helena just continued to cry into his shirt."Xavier, I love you."

"I love you too, and that's why I hereby set you free."

He then leaned down and kissed her neck. The leash and the three sixer briefly appeared before seemingly materializing. Feeling the alliance breaking between them struck capital of Montana trench into her kernel, deeper than she ever thought possible. Her computer storage would remain, but the association between their somebody was severed. She closed her oculus and collapsed in his arms, the electric shock having knocked her out.

Xavier sighed and brushed her hair out of her fount."You're always so beautiful."

He then picked her up and stepped into the scant, holding her out. A Au aura enwrapped Helena's soundbox and she began to float, the index of God flooding every fiber of her being and recreating her into the new messiah. She hovered vertically with her sleeve held out to her sides, as if she were being crucified. The light of God was returning to Earth, and already, Xavier could experience it trying to crusade him out. The humanity was now hers, her force exceeding his. He snapped his fingers and a crimson vena portae appeared before him, leading back to inferno.

He shot one final glance to Helena and smiled."Thank you, Helena. Thank you for everything."

He stepped into the doorway and vanished. Twenty instant later, Israeli soldiers swarmed in, ready for a last-ditch effort to kill Xavier. They found Helena, glowing like a mavin and hovering in the crucifixion constitution. They stared at her, completely lost for words. Slowly, she was lowered back down to the flooring and they rushed over to her. Her eyes opened and she took a shuddering breath, feeling like she had been paralyzed her entire animation and could at last feel her body.

"young woman, are you ok ?"

She took the soldier's hand and he helped her to her human foot. It took a second for her mind to straighten out and sort through all of the energy and knowledge pulsing through her existence. It then came back to her, the realization that Xavier was gone. At that present moment, she wanted to cry harder than ever in her spirit, but she put on a brave face.

"girl ?"

"Yes, I'm fine."

"What happened here ? What happened to the monster ?"

She smiled and wiped away a rip."He is gone, he was defeated. And now, it is the kickoff of a new age."



Five years later :

Wearing a couple of large sunglasses and hiding her farsighted ruby tomentum with a sun hat, Helena ducked out of the back threshold of her apartment building in Vatican city. It was hard for her to go out these days, as her followers seemed to always be camped out in forepart of her building. Hoping to go at least one day without being recognized, she strolled through the streets of Italian capital with a grinning on her boldness, admiring the looker of the world around her. thing had certainly changed since that portentous day in Jerusalem, when Armageddon was decided. capital of Montana had been revealed as the s Coming, something that surprised her to this day. She had been hard at oeuvre since then, trying to get peace to the world as she was born to.

She at live on arrived at her favorite café, the Lapp stead she and Xavier used to come for deep brown back during their shoal days. She ordered a cappuccino and sat down at an empty tabular array in the specter of a parasol. Waiting for her beverage to be delivered, she watched the citizens of capital of Italy go about their day in the street before her. As they had time and time again, her thoughts drifted back to the world Xavier had shone her, his phantasy of the future in which they ruled incline by side of meat. That vision had taken place at this sentence period, but things were different from that reality.

She was embarrassed of how little she had accomplished in these five years, compared to"Queen Helena ”. Every day was a struggle to prove herself as the messiah and secure the trust and esteem of the public. Even with her force and the ability to perform miracles, people of early religions refused to live with her or her teachings and a lot of Christians were against the idea of the Second Coming being in the form of a womanhood. There had also been misunderstanding in the get-go, brought on by her youthful naivete, but there was still progress being made. Even if she had yet to bring about macrocosm peace, the turn of her followers was growing daily and she had become a political radio beacon on the international degree. Slowly but surely, the world was changing, and she would spend the sleep of eternity making sure as shooting it was for the better.

Her coffee was brought to her and she took a gluttonous drink, savoring the taste and the memories it brought back, memory board of Saint Francis Xavier. The two buff hadn't had a lot of time to be together, but his leaving wasn't something she could simply move on from. He had returned to inferno, but would he stay there forever ? Every day she thought about him and wished he would give back. She was lonely without him, and his wisdom and knowledge would certainly help her on her track to establishing creation peace.

Looking down the street, she smiled. Thane and Daphne were walking down the street, pushing a baby buggy. They were both glad, their faces as bright as the halo on their fingers. How foreign, that of all the people in the world, those two would end up finding each other ? And of all thing, it was the violation of Xavier into Rosewood University that had brought them together. daphne had straightened her act after Saint Francis Xavier betrayed her and decided to give religious belief a fortune. That was when she met Thane, a saint ordained by Helena herself, and now a world-famous demonologist and exorcist. The two of them together were test copy of how the impossible had become realism in this new world.

Having finished her coffee, she was about to pay and entrust, but felt a hand grasp her shoulder. A lightning bolt shot up her spine. ‘ No, it can't be…'

She looked up, seeing a smile she thought he would never see again.

"hello, Helena."

"Xavier…"

She jumped from her chairwoman and tackled him, sobbing into his collar and soaking his shirt with rent of joy. He looked older than she remembered, at least as old as she was, and holding him, he felt so much different than before. He felt… hollow.

"Where have you been ? How did you come back ?"

"I was in infernal region, making myself make for the day I could return to you, even if it meant giving up everything else."

It then hit her, the recognition of this sensory faculty. He wasn't hollow. He was human. There was no longer any king in him.

"You… what did you do ?"

"Five age, it took five years to completely unclothe the iniquity away from my soul. It was the solitary way I could return to this world now basking in your God Almighty light. The lowest light of energy I had, I used to come back. I'm ready to spend my aliveness you, my mortal lifetime, not as the Antichrist, but as a man, a man who loves you."

She looked at him and smiled with split still rolling down her beautiful nerve."Welcome plate. I love you, my king."

He smiled as well and began to buss her."I love you too, my queen."





The End



Please gossip !
Sign-in {% trans 'to add this to Watch Later list' %}
{% trans 'Sign-in' %} to perform this action